To Ride
Pegasus
by Anne
McCaffrey
Version
1.0
A #BW
Release
Contents
1 To Ride Pegasus
2 A Womanly Talent
3 Apple
4 A Bridle for Pegasus
To Ride
Pegasus
The
slick pavement, oily with rain and motor lubricants that had dripped from the
hundreds of ill-repaired vehicles utilizing the major north-south artery into
Jerhattan, caused the accident. Henry Darrow had not been exceeding the speed
limit when he passed the old two-seater. But he had a date with destiny. And
kept it on time.
Had
there been no ram that day, or had the lane been closed as scheduled for
resurfacing, or had the old two-seater maintained the minimum speed in the
left-hand lane, Henry Darrow would not have been exasperated enough to pass,
would not have skidded on the slick paving, would not have crashed into the
guard rail, would not have fractured his skull so that a bone fragment pressed
against the brain pan; had the accident occurred even half a mile further up
the arterial road, Henry Darrow would not have been sent to the one hospital in
the area equipped with a special electro-encephalograph.
As
things came to pass, this was how his accident was to occur: exactly how. In
fact, he had jotted down the exact time in his astral notebook: 10:02:50 post
meridian. He had also reminded himself that day not to take the arterial route
back into Jerhattan but he had not foreseen one slight delay at the gasoline
station which caused him to change his mind and take the fateful route,
forgetful of his own prognostication.
Of
course, since it was a major turning for him as well as millions of other
people, he could never have avoided
the
accident. Which is why his subconscious—or so it is maintained—prevented him
from remembering his forecast at the critical moment.
Henry
Darrow was therefore injured, seriously, with minor fractures in the left leg
as well as the depressed fragment of skull bone. Had Henry been fully conscious
during surgery, he would have assured the surgeons that, despite the severity
of the wound, he would live. They would have been dubious. Henry Darrow knew
when he was going to die—from myocardial infarction, some fifteen years, four
months, and nine days in the future.
He
couldn't tell them since the cranial pressure affected his speech center and he
was mercifully unaware of his surroundings. Brain surgery can be a harrowing
experience.
The
operation was technically successful and Henry was assigned a bed in the
intensive care ward, cardiac and encephalographic monitors keeping close track
of his vital systems. The Southside General Hospital boasted the very latest
technology, including one of the ultra-sensitive electroencephalographs,
familiarly known as "Gooseggs." The Goosegg equipment was developed
during the Apollo flights in the 70s, to monitor the effects of the mysterious
"lights" which periodically afflicted the astronauts, and to record
any suspected damage by cosmic radiation to the brain tissue. The ultra
sensitive equipment was primarily used now in hospitals to detect brain damage
to newborn infants suffering oxygen starvation during birth, or, as in Henry
Darrow's case, brain injuries where similar oxygen deprivation, bleeding, and
pressure must be ascertained.
The
intensive care nurse on duty when Darrow regained his sense after surgery was,
as Destiny preordained, Molly Mahony, a rather plain girl who good-naturedly
bore a lot of teasing from her colleagues for her avowed dedication to nursing.
She was invariably assigned the critical cases because she had a knack of pulling
them through the crises. "Dr. Scherman, would you look at the print-out on
Mr.
Darrow's EEG?" she said when the resident checked in at her station.
"The alphas are unusually strong for a man as critically injured as he,
aren't they?"
Scherman
looked obediently at the graphs, nodded sagely and then gave her a wink.
"He been conscious at all? Giving you a line?"
Molly
shook her head, very serious though she knew he was teasing her. Scherman
always did. "He's not regained consciousness. Dr. Scherman. I'm to notify
Dr. Wahlman when he does. But should I give him a ring about these
readings?"
"Ah,
don't bother, Molly. That one's lucky he can print anything out on the Goosegg.
You'd've thought he'd've known better."
"Better?
About what? He was an accident casualty, wasn't he?"
"Better
about going out at all. He's Henry Darrow, the astrologer. Christ, it costs a
fortune to consult him about your future." Scherman snorted. "And he
couldn't cast his own properly."
Scherman
left after a cursory glance at the other i.e. patients. Molly Mahony looked
with renewed interest at the brain injury. She knew of Henry Darrow, though she
wouldn't have admitted it to many. No more than she would have admitted to
anyone that she felt she had the gift of healing. Unlike her grandmother who'd
had no medical background and ran into problems with her "healing
hands," Molly had professional cachet and knew best how and when to apply
her "whammy."
Having
a unique talent. Molly was keenly interested in all the paranormal
manifestations. In her lexicon, the astrologist merely used the signs of the
zodiac to focus a precognitive gift, one fortunately more scientifically based
than tea-leaf reading or card-telling. Just as the nursing profession allowed
her to focus her healing talent on a scientific basis. So she knew of Henry
Darrow and now tiptoed, like an awed sycophant, to the bedside and stared down
at a face she hadn't noticed before.
His
face had character even in lax-jawed abnormal coma. The eye-sockets were black
and blue pits, and here and there a trace of blood had escaped the emergency
clean-up. It was unfair of her to look at him in such a condition. She laid the
back of her hand gently against his cheek, not liking the color of his skin.
She flicked back the sheet, took a fold of the pectoral skin, and gave it a
brutal twist. Well, at least he had reactions. She patted the sheet into place
and stroked his cheek again.
The
cardiograph pulsed slow but regular, though there were traces in the reading that
spelled the beginnings of arteriosclerosis. No more than would be apparent in
any reading of a forty-two-year-old heart which had lived well and hard.
Now she
placed strong, slender fingers on his temples, pressing lightly, trying to
"feel" where the real injury was. Not that which the surgeons had
corrected when they removed the splinter and released the pressure on the
brain. But the psychic injury, the essential blow to the vitalities of the man,
which had been shocked by the proximity of death, by the exigency of the
operation— that ultimate violation of personal integrity.
So
often in her reading of case histories, she'd seen the simple term "heart
failure," or the more complex medical annotation of heart stoppage for a
variety of physically inexplicable and unnecessary reasons. Shock, they would
term it for lack of better explanation, "the patient died of shock."
Fright, Molly called it. When a patient of hers retreated from reality in this
sort of fright, Molly would draw that violated integrity back again with her
Talent.
The
response to her healing touch on Henry Darrow's brow was different and
puzzling. The cardiogram etched bolder, stronger peaks and the Goosegg made
frantic passes on all four recording bands.
Henry
Darrow's eyelids flickered, opened, and a faint smile crossed his lips.
"What
the hell hit me?" he asked.
"You
hit you," Molly replied, "on the center post of your car when you
crashed into the guard rails, Mr. Darrow. Head ache?"
"Christ
yes!" He moaned and tried to reach upward.
"Don't.
You've suffered a severe concussion, head lacerations, your left leg is
fractured..."
There
was mischief in the clear green eyes that met Molly's. "You're not
supposed to tell me such things, are you?"
Molly
smiled. "You know anyhow. And you really ought to pay more attention to
your own predictions, Mr. Darrow."
The
Goosegg chattered crazily and Molly whirled to see what was happening. But
Henry Darrow was grabbing her arm, his eyes widening with bewildered surprise
and incredulity.
"You're
a Gemini. What's your name? You're going to marry me."
Love at
first sight is a rare enough incident, particularly in a hospital setting,
despite what the romances say. But far rarer was the scientific accident that
proved a long suspected truth. For what had registered on the Goosegg's chart
was indisputable proof that the parapsychic talent exists. Henry Darrow had a
precognitive experience when he looked at Molly Mahony as a person, not just
the nurse in attendance, and "knew" she would be his wife.
They
did marry, as soon as his leg was out of the cast. Marriage was not the only
thing Henry foresaw for Molly: he knew, too, her date of death, a fact he never
disclosed to her. Talents, he learned very shortly, had to discount such
precogs in their own lives if they were to operate efficiently for others.
Molly was treasured, loved and cherished all the days of her life by her
husband because he knew how little of her time he would enjoy.
The
significance of the Goosegg's remarkable activity did not immediately impinge
on Henry's awareness. To
Molly
Mahony belongs all the credit, therefore, for lifting the parapsychic function
from the realm of chicanery to science.
For
starters, Molly was fascinated with the unusual strength and pattern of Henry's
EEG charts. She couldn't dismiss, as Dr. Scherman had, the variations. In her
favor was a natural inclination to place Henry Darrow's mind into an
exceptional category. Added to that, she knew Henry'd had the precognition of their
marriage at the precise moment the Goosegg went wild. At the very first
opportunity she tried an empiric experiment. She attached the electrodes to her
own skull the next time she had occasion to exert her own ability in the
intensive care ward. A similar variation occurred in her reading; not as
intense as Henry's, but significant. She took several more of herself, and
copied those portions of Henry's records which showed this curious excitation.
She was
rather surprised that Dr. Wahlman, Henry's surgeon, did not cancel the Goosegg
monitoring when Henry appeared to have recovered from the worst of the
concussion. She wondered if Wahlman was as interested in the EEG variation as
she was.
Henry
had two more precognitive incidents before she felt she could approach Dr.
Wahlman with her private conclusions.
"For
my own information, Dr. Wahlman, what is the significance of this activity in
an EEG?"
"Well,
now," said Wahlman, taking the graphs diffidently and studying them in a
manner which told Molly that he hadn't a clue. "To be frank, Mahony, I
don't know. This particular sort of print-out usually occurs just prior to
death. And Darrow's very much alive." The surgeon looked towards Henry's
closed door with some irritation. Henry had insisted on pursuing his avocation
of charting horoscopes, had even imported his computer, embarking on a cerebral
activity which apparently had no deleterious effects on his rapid recovery but
did not strike Wahlman
as
exactly the sort of occupation suitable to a man recovering from a near-fatal
head injury.
"And
these?" Molly showed him her own graphs.
"Whose
are these? A terminal reading? No, couldn't be. The alpha's too intense. What
are you up to, Mahony?"
"I'm
not certain, doctor, but I do know that when Mr. Darrow is ... hardest at work,
that's when this sort of variation occurs."
"Jesus
help us, the damned Goosegg's queer for astrology?"
Molly
smiled and apologized for bothering the surgeon with anomalies.
"Mahony,
if you weren't the best post-operative nurse we have, I'd tell you to bug off.
But if you have any idea, any unreasonable idea, why that kind of reading
occurs, would you please let me in on the secret?"
She let
Henry in first.
"The
moment you woke up after your accident and asked was I Gemini and then said I
was going to marry you, was that a precog?"
"Fact,
my love—fact!"
"No,
Henry, stop that now. Later. Answer me. Was your precognitive faculty at
work?"
"Violently."
The modified bandage on his head gave him a slightly rakish look but he stopped
caressing her, responding to her serious mood.
"And,
for instance, when Mrs. Rellahan was here, you told me that you had an intense
prevision..:"
"Hmmmm."
Henry's mouth tightened slightly with dislike.
"This
is what the Goosegg printed out. See, here the rapid needle, strong strokes,
the length of the pattern . . . And, in these..."
"That's
not my pattern, too, is it? Quite a difference."
"No,
that's my brain waves. And this is what happens when I'm healing."
Henry
looked slowly up at Molly, an incredulous joy
brightening
his eyes, a light suffusing his face that rewarded Molly for her efforts and
intuition.
"Molly,
my own heart's darling, do you know what we have here?"
The
world in general remained skeptical. Fortunately Henry Darrow cared very little
for the world's thoughts but he was able to produce proof to a powerful,
wealthy few that the parapsychic faculty existed in certain individuals and
could be manifested at will.
A whole
new line of research was instigated by those private persons and concerns which
had long hoped for scientific recognition of the paranormal abilities.
"I've
always had a presentiment of Destiny, of being on the threshold of some vast
important breakthrough," Henry told Molly during the early hectic days
shortly before they formed the first Parapsychic Center. "Most
megalomaniacs do, too, and your psychotic paranoids like Nero, Napoleon, Hitler
and Kyudu. That's why I had that team of psychiatrists examine my mental health
with fine Freudian tongs. Nonetheless it's a prejudicial admission. D'you know,
I've been afraid to forecast my own future too far in advance now? Some details
are unwise for any man to know . . ." He looked with unfocused eyes at the
blank wall in front of them for a moment before he smiled reassuringly at her.
"I've been a dilettante up till now and my critics can say either that I
gained my wits in that accident, or lost the few I had, but that event was the
threshold of my... of our destiny."
"Damn
the torpedoes and full steam ahead," Molly replied, gesturing
theatrically.
"And
torpedoes there will be," Henry agreed grimly.
"I
thought you said you didn't see far in advance ..."
"For
myself, I meant. Not for what we must do." He was silent again for a
moment. "God, it's going to be fun."
Molly
looked at the amusement in his eyes, the anticipatory gleam of malice.
"For whom?" she asked.
His
eyes sparkled as he turned his gaze back to her.
"For
us," he said, hugging her affectionately, "for all of us," and
he meant the newly recruited Talents. "We may perceive the outcome, but
half the fun, most of the fun in life, is getting there. And I've got just
enough time."
As soon
as he was sufficiently recovered to argue with his surgeons (and because Molly
assured Wahlman that Henry couldn't get around her vigilance), he was allowed
to go back to work full time. Not, as previously, in his capacity as a
dilettante astrologer, but as the manager, organizer, fund-raiser, and
recruiter par excellence for the Parapsychic Center.
"Mary-Molly
luv, it's going to be accomplished in steps, this establishment of the Talented
in the scheme of things. Not society, mind you, for we're the original
nonconformists," and he tapped his forehead just below the pink flesh of
the newly healed head wound. "And Society will never permit us to
integrate. That's okay!" He consigned Society to insignificance with a
flick of his fingers. "The Talented form their own society and that's as
it should be: birds of a feather. No, not birds. Winged horses! Ha! Yes,
indeed. Pegasus . . . the poetic winged horse of flights of fancy. A bloody
good symbol for us. You'd see a lot from the back of a winged horse..."
"Yes,
an airplane has blind spots. Where would you put a saddle?" Molly had her
practical side.
He
laughed and hugged her. Henry's frequent demonstrations of affection were a
source of great delight to Molly, whose own strength was in tactile contacts.
"Don't
know. Lord, how would you bridle a winged horse?"
"With
the heart?"
"Indubitably!"
The notion pleased him. "Yes, with the heart and the head because Pegasus
is too strong a steed to control or subdue by any ordinary method."
"You
couldn't break our sort of Pegasus anyhow," Molly said firmly.
"Wouldn't want to even when he flies so high..." She burrowed into
Henry's arms, suddenly frightened by the analogy.
"Yes,
luv. When you ride the winged horse, you can't dismount. Anymore than you can
suppress the Talent you've been given. We'll find our bridle, I think, with
time and training and more practice at riding.
"That
Goosegg was the really important break. Now we can prove parapsychic powers
exist and who has them. We can discredit the charlatans and clowns who've given
the rest of us a bad name. The real Talents will be registered with the Center,
and we'll have graphs to prove they've had valid Incidents. The Center will
supply them with the specialized jobs that utilize their Talents. From just a
sampling of validly Talented people we've already attracted, I can think of
hundreds of top jobs."
"Even
Titter Beyley and Charity McGillicuddy?" Molly Mahony Darrow's eyes danced
with mischief because Titter drank continuously and Charity pursued an old
profession diligently.
"Takes
a thief to catch a thief and Titter's been stealing for years to support his
habit. Remember that Charity's heart of gold beats in a true telepath's
breast."
"Size
42-C."
"Molly!"
"Go
on with our future, Henry."
"I
want Watson Claire as our PR man because I know damned well he's a receiving
telepath: he must be to handle clients the way he does. He's got a positive
genius for presenting the campaign a client'll buy. Claire's the sort of person
we've got to enlist, for his sake as well as ours. Ours, because we've got the
biggest goddamn public relations program on our hands, and the public can make
or break us. His sake, because he's not happy pushing products he
despises."
Molly
nodded sympathetically.
"We
get an intensive information program going and that will help recruiting. Then
we've got to start rescue operations for those hidden Talents and especially
those poor misfits in institutions because they heard voices . . . which they
did ... or they imagined impossible things, which they didn't. Or their empathy
with the world around them was too great to be endured and they abandoned
reality. And we've got to figure out the best way to train these Talents once
we've got them verified.
"Then
we've got to get exactly the right place to live in."
"To
live? But this apartment is ..."
"Okay
for us, for the time being. But not for the rest of us. No, now don't worry,
Molly luv. I know where we're going."
Molly
regarded him steadily for a second. "But you don't know exactly how we'll
get there, is that it?"
Henry
laughed, nodding.
"That's
the challenge, luv."
"And
then what's on the agenda? I'd better know the worst."
Henry
chuckled to give himself time to evade. "Then comes one of the harder jobs
..."
Molly's
eyes grew round. "You've outlined a lifetime's work and then tell me one
of the harder jobs..."
"Will
be to establish professional immunity for the Talents so we don't get sued out
of our eyeball sockets because we said something would happen which didn't
because we said it would. Oh, we'll get it sooner or later, but I'd rather
sooner than later when you consider the money that'll be tied up in suits. But
that won't be my headache."
"It
won't be?"
"I
can't live forever, luv."
She
clung to him and he gave her only a quick embrace.
"I'll
live long enough, Mary-Molly luv, and so will
you."
He put her away from him then, for he had to keep his desire in check with the
pressures of his destiny.
"Now,
gentlemen, the subject all wired up to the electroencephalograph, familiarly
known as the Goosegg, is a telekinetic Talent. That means, gentleman, that he
can move objects without any other agency than his mind. Ralph, would you be
good enough to demonstrate?"
Ralph,
who used to be known as Rat Wilson, was not the most prepossessing of
individuals, being skinny to the point of emaciation, with a rodent-like face
and a mouth that remained slightly open due to untended tonsils and adenoids;
but his rather large grey eyes were dancing with mischief and interest. That he
had perfected his art in the variety of correctional institutions which had
attempted to remold him to society's requirements was irrelevant—now.
He sat
under the electrode net of the Goosegg at one end of a large hall, a small TV
camera throwing a picture of the print-out on the big screen above him.
Forty-seven scientists and businessmen were seated around the room, in the
center of which sat a table with a variety of objects: a hammer, nails and a
plank of wood; a coffee tray with an urn, cups, cream and sugar; a guitar; and
a training set of waldoes, limp and grotesque without hands to fill the gloves.
Henry
Darrow walked to the other end of the room, as far from both Ralph and the
table as possible.
There
was a significant silence in the room, with the audience casting glances from
table to Ralph to Henry. Suddenly a cup rattled, rose, was joined to a saucer
and aligned itself under the spout of the urn which was tapped almost
simultaneously to pour coffee into the cup. Belatedly, a spoon clattered into
the saucer.
"Who
takes it black?" asked Ralph as cup and saucer veered to the nearest
watchers.
"I
do," said one cool businessman, lifting his hand.
"Hang
on to it then, mac," replied Ralph. "Got it?"
"Hey!"
The man closed his fingers around the lip of the saucer but when Ralph released
it, he was unprepared and the black coffee sloshed over the saucer rim onto his
hand.
There
was a slight wave of amusement, shattered by the crash of a hammer driving a
nail into a block of wood.
"I'll
make the next one white. Who's for it?"
A
second cup was delivered to its receiver as the hammer drove the nail smartly
into the wood. At the same tune, the waldoes jerked alive and began to assemble
the objects in the tray. The guitar twanged with a bawdy ballad.
With
cups sailing around the room, the crack of the hammer to the tempo of the song,
the industry of the waldoes leaving everyone gaping, Henry returned to the
stage, taking a pointer and starting the sales pitch.
"As
you will notice, if you can take your eyes from the flying saucers, Ralph's use
of his Talent results in the hard variations of the alpha waves, here and here.
The beta fluctuation is rapid, deep. Note the difference at the beginning of
the graph before Ralph started. Notice the increase as he stepped up the output
of the parapsychic faculty. Has anyone any doubts about the authenticity of
this demonstration? Will you accept this print-out as valid, and that the graph
represents Ralph's paranormal ability?"
"Stop
him!"
Henry
signalled to Ralph and coffee cups crashed to the floor. The hammer bounced and
fell to the table and the waldoes went limp to a discordant twang on the
guitar.
"For
chrissake," and the man on whom a cup of coffee had fallen sprang to his
feet, wiping at soaked pants and dancing from the hot bath. Instantly the cup
righted itself and incredibly refilled with the just-emptied coffee.
"Sorry
about that, mac, but someone said stop!"
The
abrupt surcease of the parapsychic was recorded on the graph, as was the minor
activity of mopping up the spill.
"Hey,
my pants are dry!"
"Are there
any other questions?" asked Henry, winking
surreptitiously to the grinning Ralph.
"Yes,"
and a heavy set man towards the rear of the room stood slowly to his feet.
"Coffee vending machines handle this sort of service, an idiot can drive a
nail; granted a waldo is used for delicate sterile operations, any long hair
plays guitar . . . not all at once, admittedly, but how would someone like
Ralph be employed? And incidentally, I know his background."
"You
might say." Henry said with a smile, "that Ralph is a real product of
his background of reform school and correctional institution. That's how he
acquired his Talent. Society wasn't ready for Ralph or his Talent. We are.
"We've
demonstrated here that Ralph can do a variety of things simultaneously: tasks
requiring multiple action such as assembling coffee implements and teleporting
them to the proper destination, as well as exercises requiring a certain
strength and/or precision.
"However,
Ralph has a limited range. We've duplicated today's fun and games over a
distance of half a mile, but not further with any precision or strength. Ralph
is not a superman. That's the first point I wish to impress on you. He has a
Talent but it's a finite one, suitable for certain, rather limited use. He
would be a profitable investment for someone like yourself. Mr. Gregory, for
precision assembly under vacuum, sterile or radiation conditions.
"I
don't say that Ralph is a totally reformed character at all," and Henry
grinned at Ralph, "but he is now able to purchase legally the things he
used to heist. He is subject, and he knows it, to the mental examination of a
strong telepath. He also thoroughly enjoys his present occupation."
"You
bet, mac." And the scathing look Ralph bent on the audience left no doubts
that the little man delighted in disconcerting the men of distinction, rank and
position.
"If
you can't cure 'em, recruit 'em," Henry added.
"Are
you implying, Mr. Darrow, that half the popula-
tion of
jails and mental institutions are peopled by your misunderstood
parapsychics?"
"Not
at all. I admit we're testing many so-called misfits to see if thwarted or yes,
misunderstood, paranormal Talents are not partly responsible for their
maladjustment. But that does not mean they are all graduates of institutions.
"Talent,
gentlemen, can include something as simple as being a born mechanic. We've all
known or heard of the guy who just listens to the sound of an engine and knows
what's wrong with it. Or the plumber who can dowse the exact location of a
break in water pipes. Or the pyromaniac who "knows" when and where a
fire will break out and has so often been accused of starting it; the woman
whose hands ease a fever or soothe a pain, the worker who knows instinctively
what the boss needs, the person who can always find what's been mislaid or
lost. These are everyday, but valid, evidences of the parapsychic Talent. These
are the people we want to include in our Centers—not just the more dramatic
mind-readers and clairvoyants. The Talented are rarely supermen and women, just
people who operate on a different wavelength. Employ them in the proper
capacity and utilize their Talents to your advantage."
"Besides
money, what do you want from us, Darrow?"
"Doctor
Abbey, isn't it? From you and your colleagues all over the world, I want the
public admission that Talent has left the tearoom and entered the laboratory.
We have scientific evidence that the parapsychic faculty exists and can be
used, at will, with predictable result. Science, gentlemen, by definition, is
any skill that reflects a precise application of principles. The principle in
Ralph's case is moving objects without artificial aid."
"I
might buy the teleportation, Darrow," replied Doctor Abbey, slightly
contemptuous, "but go back to the tearoom a minute. Give me an example of
the science behind precognition."
"I
knew you'd ask that, Doctor Abbey. And I predict
that you
will receive a favorable answer to your latest inquiry into the problem—"
Henry raised his hand to suppress Abbey's exclamation, "I'm discreet
enough, Doctor Abbey—into the problem you're investigating with Doctors
Schwarz, Vosogin and Clasmire. That, Doctor Abbey, is predictable, scientific
and accurate enough—since your correspondence with the three men is a closely
guarded secret—to be convincing. Right?
From
the stunned expression on Dr. Abbey's face as he sank into his chair, Darrow
knew he was right and Abbey was convinced.
"Now,"
Henry asked the audience in general, "all of you have had problems which I
believe some of our Talents can solve. What am I offered?"
"Why,
after fourteen years and nine rent increases— which I didn't protest by the
way—will you not renew my lease?"
"Mister
Darrow, I've been told that your lease is not renewable and that's what I've
been told to tell you."
"How
come the 'Mister Darrow,' Frank? Now look, I've paid my rent right on the
button for fourteen years. I've had no more than legitimate redecorating, why
am I not able to renew my lease?" Henry knew the problem, had foreseen
this situation, but he was human enough to like to see people squirm.
Particularly if it might let in a little wisdom and understanding of Talent.
Frank
Hummel looked very uncomfortable.
"C'mon,
Frank. You know. Don't try to kid me you don't."
Frank
looked up with a miserable expression in his eyes. "And that's it, Hank.
That's just it. You do know. You know too goddamned much and the other tenants
are scared."
Henry
threw back his head and roared with laughter. "No one's conscience is
clear? My God, Frank, do they
really
think I know or care, for that matter, about their petty intrigues and
affairs?" Then he saw he'd offended Frank and wished he were a telepath,
not a precog. "Frank, I 'see' no more than I did when I used astrology to
focus my Talent. No one was afraid of me when I was just a star-gazer."
Frank
did squirm at Henry's choice of phrase because that's how the man thought of
Henry.
"I
can't read minds," Henry went on, "and come to that, Frank, I don't
really know what's going on under my nose. My Talent is not for individuals:
it's for mass futures. Oh, yes, important individuals who will affect the lives
of millions. But not if Mrs. Walters in 4-C is going to have a baby . . . not
unless I have cast her individual horoscope . . . and she's too scared of her
husband to come to me for that." Henry sighed for even that piece of
common sense insight was now being misconstrued by the apprehensive real estate
agent. "Look, everyone in the building knows Walters's opinion of me, and
how scared she is of him. That takes no Talent at all, Frank. And it takes no
Talent either to know that Walters is probably one of the prime instigators in
getting me evicted."
"You're
not being evicted, Mr. Darrow."
"Oh
no?"
"No!
It's just that your lease is not being renewed."
"How
much of an extension can I have to find new quarters? You know how tight the
housing situation is in Jerhattan."
Frank
looked everywhere but at Henry.
"Frank
.. . Frank? Frank, look at me," and reluctantly, hesitantly, the man
obeyed. "Frank, you've known me for fourteen years. Why, suddenly, are you
afraid of me?" Henry knew the answer but he wanted Frank to admit it. One
man, one Frank Hummel, wouldn't change the struggle of the Talented for
acceptance but it might change one other mind now, three next week. Every ally
was valuable. And to have allies one had to admit to enemies.
"It's
just that. . . that. .. hell, you're not a star-gazer anymore, Mister Darrow.
You're for real." The apprehension in Frank Hummel's face was equally
real.
"Frank,
thank you. This isn't easy for you and I will make it less easy but I want you
to remember fourteen years of a very pleasant relationship. I knew you'd be
here today. I knew it four months ago when Molly and I had that series of
graffiti painted on the door and the so-called burglary attempts. I've a lease
on new quarters. We're moving tomorrow."
Frank
already had too much to think about "You mean, you knew? Already? But I
just got the orders yesterday and you told me that you didn't see individual
... and you're—"
"I'm
not lying about what I can see, Frank, but I'd certainly better see what
affects myself, or a fine star-gazer I'd be. Right?"
Hummel
was slowly backing out of the apartment, less and less convinced. Once again
Henry wished he were a telepath—or at least empathic—and could know what was
running through Frank's mind and counter it.
"Do
me one favor, Frank," Henry said. "On the 18th of next month, in the
fourth race at Belmont, bet every credit you've been saving on a horse named
Mibimi. Only don't place your bet until the last minute before the race. Will
you do that for me? And then when Mibimi wins, remember Talent is useful."
Frank
had retreated to the elevator and Henry wondered if the confused man had taken
in his tip. He didn't often give them but for a friend you can do a favor . . .
if it'll cement his friendship.
Henry
shrugged as he closed the door. The scene just played in his living room had
been repeated over and over, with acknowledged Talents as reluctant dramatis
personae.
Just
another of those paradoxes which assailed them from all sides now that Talent
was respectable. By removing the onus of haphazard performance, by having
Talents
registered
with the Center, they could contract for premium wages. But suddenly the
Talents were also elevated into the genus "pariah," found themselves
untouchables, unwelcome and feared, all through misunderstanding.
Watson
Claire was mounting a massive soft-sell public information program, abetted by
his contacts in the media profession who were delighted at something
newsworthy. Judiciously applied blackmail kept the worst newsmongers at bay.
But it would take time, Claire said (and Henry understood), for the program to
seep down to the level where it was most required ... in the housing
developments which were now ousting anyone suspected of possessing Talent.
Well,
the immense warehouse Henry had leased in the dock area would suffice until
he'd figured out how to appeal to George Henner. That financial wizard had an
accounting to make and Henry was vastly amused by recent findings. It was going
to be fun watching Henner's reactions.
He
picked up the comunit to call the warehouse: the shielding had been in place a
week ago so there had been just the finishing of the living quarters. Maybe he
should have used telekinetics to move his furnishings? No, that would be a bad
scene, however personally satisfying it might be. Some things even Talents had
better do the usual way.
"My
name is Henry Darrow, Commissioner Mailer. This is my wife, Molly; Barbara
Holland is our finder, and Jerry comes along to lug the Goosegg. I believe this
is your list of most wanteds?"
"Just
what is this?" The Commissioner for Law Enforcement and Order had risen in
indignation from his paper-free desk. "My appointment was with James
Marshall, not you, Darrow."
"I
know. Jim got it for us because you've refused to see..."
"A
bunch of tearoom crackpots!"
"Well,
we're here and you're going to listen ..."
"Not
if I have any say . . ." The Commissioner was fumbling with his desk set
and swore when the telltale lights did not wink on at his touch.
"It
won't work, Commissioner Mailer," Henry told him. "I forgot to
mention that Jerry's telekinetic and keeps closing the switches as soon as you
press. Sorry. You're incommunicado until you listen. And watch. Barbara, if you
would, please? Here's the list. Just sit here. Ready, Molly?"
The
Commissioner's raging did him no good since his office was soundproofed. He
continued to fumble futilely with his comunit, unable to believe that it
wouldn't function because some nondescript young man stared at it. He didn't
notice that Molly was quietly placing the electrode net on Barbara's head. The
girl adjusted it into the scalped spots in her hair and nodded to Henry.
"I
gather these are in order of preference?" Henry asked the Commissioner.
Henry perched on the desk, unperturbed by the Commissioner's belligerence and
profanity.
"Preference?
What'n'hell are you talking about, Darrow? Get your circus out of here. This is
a law enforcement and order..."
"Neither
of which you are able to maintain with the current restrictions on your
men," said Henry, interrupting with such a forceful tone that the
Commissioner's sputtering died and he stared at Darrow in amazement. Few people
had addressed the LEO man in that tone of voice. "That's why I'm here, to
render assistance you can't get from any other agency. Now sit down, shut up,
and listen. Who do you want us to find for you first?"
"Find?"
"Find!"
The two
men locked eyes and there was a quality in Henry's that wrought a sudden change
in the Commissioner.
"All
right," Mailer said in a tight hard voice, "find me the man they call
Joe Blow."
"The
Joy Pill man?"
"That's
him."
Henry
flicked out the second IBM card and handed it to Barbara Holland.
"Enough
for you, Babs?"
The
girl studied the sketch drawn by police artists from verbal descriptions of
victims of the elusive Joe Blow. She read the notations on his most frequented
locations, his general modus operandi. Then she looked up at Henry with a grin.
"This
isn't a really fair test, Henry," she said.
"Ha!"
exclaimed the Commissioner, an unholy delight in his eyes.
"No,"
said Barbara, "because I've encountered him so it's easy to track him
down." She closed her eyes, clasping the card between her hands. The
needles on the Goosegg began to whip across the graph paper. Her smile widened
and she opened her eyes. "He's on the corner of 4th Avenue New East and
197th Street. He's wearing a long blue duty mac, with waterproofed shoulders,
and a long blond wig. No moustaches today. He's carrying nothing illegal but he
has a great deal of money on him and some folded papers."
The
Commissioner was fumbling with his comunit. "For God's sake release it or
whatever. I've got to get..."
"Why?"
asked Barbara. "You want him with dust or acid or the Brown Joy, don't
you?"
"I
want him in any way."
"Can
you charge him?"
"I've
only got to get him..."
Suddenly
the comunit came alive on every previously
pressed
band, but the Commissioner got it sorted out and
had a
squad vehicle dispatched to the coordinates, to ap-
prehend
a man answering Barbara's description. Then he
turned
back, smiling sourly at the four people. "We'll see
what
we'll see. If such a man is there, we'll have him in three minutes. My people
are quick and efficient."
"So
are mine," said Henry and looked expectantly at Barbara, who nodded.
"What's
that all about?" demanded the Commissioner.
"I'm
keeping track of him," Barbara replied, and suddenly the third band began
to show activity.
"That
is the Goosegg at work, Commissioner Mailer," said Henry.
"Are
you reading my mind?" Mailer looked alarmed and angrier.
"Not
at all," Henry replied. "I'm not a telepath. I'm a tea leaf reader on
a grandiose scale ..."
The Commissioner
pursed his lips to hear his own description of Henry Darrow thrown back at him.
"All
right, then, tell me now if my men'll succeed?"
"Barbara
can tell you better than I. I don't deal generally with individuals. My
specialty is mass movement. But Barbara can find Joe Blow for you now and any
time you want to check on his whereabouts ..."
"They
have him," Barbara said, and held out her hand for another card.
The
Commissioner stared at her suspiciously.
"Oh,
let's let his men tell him, Babs."
She
shrugged and settled back in her chair. Then brightened and smiled sweetly at
Mailer. "You left your pipe in your ski jacket, Commissioner, the blue one
which you don't usually wear. If you call home right now, you'll find your wife
there. And remind her the coat is under your red dressing robe in the first
closet."
Mailer
regarded her with narrowed eyes. "I thought you said you weren't a mind
reader."
"I
never said that," Barbara replied, then pointed to Henry. "He did.
And I can only get impressions of lost articles. You did lose the pipe and were
just now thinking where had you put it. And the only reason I know about your
wife is because you say you can never find her when
you
need her." Barbara kept her face very straight but Henry knew her to be
possessed of a sense of devilment, very much in evidence under that air of
innocent helpfulness.
This
"finding" was making far more impression on the Commissioner than her
location of Joe Blow.
The
comunit buzzed.
"They
picked up a man, answering that description. What do they do with him? He's
demanding rights."
Mailer
was unprepared for only one moment. "Search him. There's been a local
robbery and a man answering his description was seen nearby. You're supposed to
find a wad of credits and papers. Invoke citizen search prerogative."
"He's
carrying roughly 8000 credits, sir," said Barbara.
"The
heist was 8000."
There
was a second long tense silence.
"He's
got it, sir."
"Book
him!"
The
fleeting expressions on Mailer's face now told of intense mental conflict. He
was a man to whom a miracle had been offered and he was too scared to accept
it.
"Barbara
is parapsychic, Commissioner. We brought Goosegg in to prove to you on a
scientific basis as reliable as ballistics, without a tea leaf in sight, that
her mind generates a specific type of electrical impulse when she uses her
parapsychic Talent. She can't read your mind except when you, or anyone, are
worrying about something lost, strayed or stolen..."
"Stolen—"
The Commissioner pounced on the word.
"If
you mean that hijacked shipment of crowd gas, Commissioner," said Barbara,
"it's in a warehouse, with a southside feel. It's very dark inside, which
hampers me: I can't see in shadows. I can make out some white airfreight
containers, they've a plastic feel, rather than wood or steel. There's a
geometric design in dark paint in the lower left hand side." She frowned
and the Goosegg chat-
tered
rapidly for a moment and then toned down to a mild, normal swing. "I'm
sorry. There simply isn't enough light there."
The
Commissioner snorted but her information had obviously given him something to
work on. "South side . . . air freight . . . white . . ." His fist
slapped down an end key. "Jack . . . what air freight companies use white
containers with geometric designs in lower left hand . . . Oh, they do. Now,
what air freight companies use southside depots . . . Oh. Hmmm. Well, check
your contacts like right now." He turned a cold dispassionate look on Barbara.
"You can't be more specific?"
Barbara
gave Henry a quick glance before answering. "I've already narrowed the
search to a small section of the city with as many specifics as I can see.
There can't be that many warehouses for air freight! I've done more than you've
been able to, Mr. Mailer."
"Now,
just a minute, young lady..."
"You've
had more than a minute, Commissioner, and my time is valuable." Barbara
was on her feet, the electrode net in her hand. "We're wasting time with
this one, Henry. And I don't like him. Miserable vibes from him, just
miserable!"
She
left the room. Molly quietly began to pack up the Goosegg while the
Commissioner stared first at the open door and then at Henry.
"She
operates more efficiently with an occasional word or two of thanks, Mailer.
Most people do." Henry gathered Molly into the curve of his arm, motioned
courteously to Jerry to take the Goosegg and wishing Mailer a pleasant
good-day, left.
"Hey,
just a minute ..."
Henry
turned at the door. "As Babs said, Mailer, you've had more than a minute
and our time is valuable."
"Does
Charity have to be sedated again, Gus?" Henry asked the Center's
physician. "We've got her a temporary
contract
to find out the troublemaker in the Arrow Shirt Company."
Gus ducked
his head, his face twisted into a grimace, wanting to say no and having to say
yes. He leaned against the now flagged door to Charity McGillicuddy's two
roomed accommodation on the living floor of the Center's warehouse building.
"Even
with the shielding we've got, Hank, it's not enough privacy for the empaths and
telepaths. Not enough physical distance. No way to get out and away from
ourselves, if you get what I mean. We're sort of all crammed into this warren
despite the conveniences and amenities. You might say, it's too much of a good
thing ... too close a buddy-buddy act. Like an overdose of euphorics.
Everyone's high here on sheer good fellowship. And it's much too much for
Charity."
Henry
looked towards the corridor window with the projection of sunlight on the
grass, a huge spreading beech tree, russet against an autumnally blue sky.
Though it was so realistic that the leaves moved gently and the angle of
sunlight altered slowly, Henry knew it to be only a projection and his mind
would not accept the fantasy that deluded millions of warren dwellers.
"Talent
requires certain realities not obtainable in this age," Gus went on.
"And one of the most important is physical freedom and elbow room."
He snorted, aware of the impossibility of fulfilling that requirement in
Jerhattan's overcrowded boundaries.
"We've
been offered that old game preserve in..."
"Too
goddamned far to commute and most of us gotta." Molnar was head
neurologist at the Midtown Hospital Center although he spent more time as the
Center's physician.
"Okay,"
Henry said, "I'll do what I can."
"Henry?"
Gus eyed his friend suspiciously. "What are you up to now?"
"Me?
Nothing." Then Henry Darrow assumed a crouched stance and rubbed his hands
together, chuckling
evilly.
"But Destiny ... haha HA! I know when we twain shall meet. Soon!"
Gus
rolled his eyes heavenward to deal with Henry Darrow in this whimsical mood.
"Oh,
don't worry, Gus," Henry said in a normal voice. "I usually call 'em,
you know."
Gus
nodded sourly.
"Content
yourself," Henry continued, "with the enticing thoughts of dissecting
my brain when I die, and trying to figure out just how I do it."
"Ha!"
"You
can't subpoena Barbara Holland, not on those grounds, Commissioner
Mailer," Henry Darrow said. "But you can hire her services from the
Center..."
"What
Center?" demanded Mailer, looking scornfully around the minuscule space
that served as Henry's office.
"The
Center we'll shortly acquire with the wages you'll be paying Talents like
Barbara, and Titter Beyley and Gil Gracie and ..."
"Titter
Beyley?" The Commissioner hovered on the verge of apoplexy.
"Yes,
Titter. He drank to stop finding things. Alcohol affects the parapsychic
faculty, sometimes it inhibits, as in Titter's case; sometimes it
sharpens."
"Now,
just a minute, Darrow..."
"My
minutes are valuable, Mailer. I only have so many. You want things and people
found: Barbara has that faculty and so does Titter Beyley. Actually Titter's
much better for inanimate objects than Barbara. He doesn't like people. And the
day you find out he's been drunk on duty, then complain."
"And
you mean to stand there, young man, and tell me that I'm going to get shot at
Saturday? Again!" Governor Lawson tipped his chair back and roared with
laughter:
an exercise he broke off abruptly to glare with an intensity akin to hatred at
Darrow and the wraith-like Steve Hawkins. "So what else is new?"
"The
predictive Incident says that a .38 slug will penetrate the right
ventricle." Steve's voice shook slightly. Henry wondered if he'd made a
mistake in bringing Steve, who was very new to his gifts and the Center's
staff. "The man will approach from the left..."
"What
does it matter where he comes from?" The Governor said, sharply, hostilely.
"Oh, I don't disbelieve you, Darrow. Or you, Hawkins. I've heard too much
about you people to be skeptical anymore. But, if I don't appear..."
"You
have to appear," Henry replied. "We ran the alternates through a
probability computation and find that your appearance at that Forum Meeting
must take place to sway a currently uncommitted 8% of the popular vote to your
party. Without that 8%, you fail to receive the critical majority and if you
fail, the Laborites can obtain the plurality they need to effect a
counter-measure that would have disastrous consequences on the economy."
Governor
Lawson began a chuckle, his belly shaking first before the amusement was
shunted up the rotund abdomen to the chest and finally became audible in the
head cavity. Finally Lawson's lips parted to emit a rich, juicy laugh.
"So,
that's the way it'll be, huh?"
"Yes,
if your eloquence doesn't falter with foreknowledge."
"Huh?
How's that?"
"You
have been given a prescience of the immediate future. Such knowledge could, in
itself, alter the circumstances of me future. We do not always have either the
personnel or the foresight to modify the future. In your case, we make an
exception. A Laborite Majority is not a good thing for the Talented."
Governor
Lawson nodded in appreciation of that expediency.
"Your
man will intercept the bullet?"
Henry
nodded.
"And
the nut will be put away? That's better than leaving him free for another shot.
Good! How many political figures does your group protect?"
"Those
who need it. And we'd appreciate a kindly word for the Center when Steve
diverts that bullet."
Lawson
nodded agreement. "Those who need protection? Or those whom you need,
Darrow? No, don't answer that one. Answer this ... will I win this
election?"
Henry
smiled slowly. "You know the answer to that one, Governor, but the fun
lies in making certain you've played the game right."
"How
far do you guys play fun and games?"
"Just
far enough!"
"Now,
Mr. Rambley, what seems to be your problem?"
"Not
my problem, Mr.Darrow. Yours!" The Internal Revenue Department man smiled
a thin smug smile and began to pull IBM cards from his neat fake-pig case.
"Really?"
"We
have here WT forms from the Department of Law Enforcement and Order, from Johns
Hopkins, Bethel General, Midtown, from Dupont, Merck Pharmaceuticals . . . need
I go on?"
"Just
as you please."
"These
salary chits represent the earnings of Barbara Holland, Titter Beyley, Charity
McGillicuddy, Gil Gracie, Frank Negelsco, Augustus Molnar . . ." Again the
IRD representative regarded Henry Darrow with a cute expression on his
fleshless face. "I could continue ..."
"Just
as you please. I give every government official the courtesy due his
office." Henry inclined his head towards Mr. Rambley who, for the first
time since he'd minced into Henry's tiny lair, looked nonplussed. "After
all, some of my best people are employed by the government."
With an
irritated sigh, Rambley closed the stack of cards and tapped them in an
admonitory fashion on the desk.
"Come
now, Mr. Darrow. These people," and he brandished the cards, "earn
tremendous salaries and yet there is no record of a single tax deduction, no
returns ..."
"They
donate their salaries in toto to the Parapsychic Center. They lease their
services contractually to the various employers. The Parapsychic Center files a
corporate form to cover them. Under Corporation Law...."
"No
one in their right minds would . . ." Rambley bounced on the end of his
chair with indignation and disbelief.
"I
never said any of the parapsychic Talents were in a right mind. In fact,"
Henry went on with gentle amusement, "there is every reason to believe
that the core of the parapsychic is, if anywhere, in the left hand part of the
brain."
"Mr.
Darrow," Mr. Rambley was on his feet. "You did say that you gave
government officials the courtesy due their office?"
"Yes,
didn't I? Consequently, you're wasting time, your government's and mine, Mr.
Rambley. The individuals represented by those neatly slotted cards do donate
their total income to the Parapsychic Center. Our accountant will be glad to
show you the appropriate records and contractual agreements ..."
"But...
but I know that that Titter Beyley creature is driving a four passenger 350 horsepower
vehicle!" Such an incongruity shocked Mr. Rambley.
"Yes,
Titter's always wanted to drive a big one. The car belongs to the Center. You
can check the registration papers."
"And
that . . . that Charity McGillicuddy has a blue ranch mink coat."
"Indeed
she has. She requisitioned it from Stores about four months ago."
"She
requisitioned . . . from Stores?"
"She
has a position to maintain now and her appearance is of great concern to the
LEO office. Think how embarrassing it would be for someone employed by the LEO
Commission to be arrested for wearing stolen furs. Of course, Charity says that
now she can buy 'em instead of 'lifting' 'em, half the fun's gone. But it gives
her a great moral boost to wear blue ranch mink in the LEO Block. We try to
keep our workers happy."
Rambley
had stared at Henry Darrow through this ingenuous explanation but his
indignation rose with every gently spoken word.
"This
won't be the last you'll hear from me, Mr. Darrow. You do not mock the Internal
Revenue Department, Mr. Darrow." He slammed the file cards into his case,
hands trembling with outraged dignity. "You'll hear from us."
"That's
fine by me. Just call ahead for an appointment. Only consider the fact that
Senators Maxwell, Abrahams, Montello and Gratz approved our corporate
structure."
Rambley's
eyes widened.
"And
the presidential advisor, Mr. Killiney, acted as our financial assistant. Don't
you have his card in that file?"
Rambley
exited, reduced to mutterings.
"Do
you often trick your way into a private home, Mr. Darrow?"
"When
I've been unable to secure an appointment any other way, yes, Mr. Henner."
Henry smiled pleasantly, trying not to glance with obvious envy at the
spaciousness of the magnificently furnished living room. Such accommodation was
almost archaic.
George
Henner appeared more amused than irritated by Henry Darrow's impertinence as he
leaned back in his Italian brocade armchair.
"If
it's money for your palm-reading, table-tilting crystal-gazing tricks, forget
it."
"On
the contrary, sir. I've affirmation that I can ask you to join our happy
band." Henry smiled at the surprise in Henner's yellowed eyes.
"Join
you?" Henner burst out laughing. His head went back showing a veritable
gold field of fillings in his upper teeth. "By God, Darrow, you've made my
day! If you can't, lick 'em, recruit 'em?"
"Actually,"
Henry went on smoothly, seating himself and crossing his legs, counterfeiting
an ease he didn't feel. He noted the flicker of irritation in Henner's face but
the financier had a reputation of letting a man have enough rope to hang
himself. "Actually, Mr. Henner, your abilities in the financial world are
as solidly derived from the parapsychic as my own. Incidentally, you're the
crystal ball reader . . . although I see you've got a modern computer for stock
market print-out instead of the old glass case."
Henner
gave an amused grunt but said nothing, his silence a subtle prod to keep Henry
talking.
"You're
known," Henry continued obediently, because that was the way the interview
ought to proceed, "to have a genius, a second sight into what stocks are
going to rise, which will fall, what bond issues will pay the keenest long-term
profit. And I can prove that you're parapsychic."
Henner
cocked his head slightly to one side, his amusement deepening, as he tacitly
encouraged Henry to produce his proof. Darrow spread the graph out on the
table. "I know you've followed the newsmedia coverage on us, so you're
familiar with this sort of graph. What you may not immediately appreciate is
the fact that this is your graph."
Henner
became immobile with attention.
"When
you had your last routine physical a month ago, your physician employed a
Goosegg. He didn't re-
alize
that it wasn't his own office model so he's blameless. You did, however,
experience what we call an Incident and it is recorded on this graph, here and
here. I believe the Incident was in connection with the Allied Metals and
Mining merger in which you managed quite a 'killing.' "
"You
don't read thought from an EEC graph, Darrow."
"Hardly.
But you placed a phone call directly you were through your physical to your
office and within the next few hours the merger was announced . . . but not
before you had acquired a tidy pile of Allied stock. Are my facts
correct?"
Henner
nodded slowly, his eyes, narrowed to intense slits, watching Henry Darrow's
face.
"That's
proof," Henry said, rustling the graph paper, "that you're
parapsychic, Mr. Henner."
The
silence which ensued, designed to make Darrow exceedingly uncomfortable, did
not. For a long space, Henry returned George Henner's stare, then folded his
arms and gazed around the beautiful room. Finally he turned back to Henner and
smiled.
"Blackmail?"
asked Henner.
Darrow
shook his head,
"No.
You'd be far too clever for that. No, I'd hazard the guess that you want to
borrow my Talent, as you call it, to make your fortunes? That would still be
essentially blackmail, wouldn't it, Darrow?"
Henry
pursed his lips a little, expressing dubiety.
"Well,
then what is it you want from me? It's something."
"Actually,
it's the twelve acre tract of land on the Palisades."
Once
again Henry wished he were a telepath to read the emotions swiftly passing
through George Henner's mind. He had startled the financier, he had touched the
most vulnerable point of the shrewd man's life: his intense love, and need for,
the beautiful estate of Beechwoods. It had
been in
Henner's family for a hundred and forty years, was a showplace which few saw.
And Henner's need of Beechwoods was as great and for the same reasons as Henry
Darrow's.
"How
could you know?" demanded Henner in a hoarse whisper.
"That
the State intends to confiscate all privately held lands within a hundred mile
radius of the Jerhattan city limits? I know because it is as important to me as
it is to you to know these things."
Henner
was on his feet, pacing to release the energy of his anger. In a barely audible
monotone he inventively assigned destinations to the State en masse, the needs
of the unhoused, unwashed multitudes in general and those particular officials
who had failed to keep Henner's ancestral home inviolate.
"If,
however, the property is already owned by a religious, medical, educational or
charitable institution which will accommodate a sufficient number of our
ever-expanding population, they cannot confiscate your property even under the
terms of Section 91, Paragraph 12 of the Housing Act of 1998."
"This
is 1997, man. That Act isn't passed yet. I can still defeat it."
"No.
It will be passed."
Henner
tried to stare that knowledge out of Henry's mind.
"And
you know the inevitability, Mr. Henner. None of your contacts can hold out any
hope of defeating that measure, nor of defending your Beechwoods."
"And
it's your table-tilting tea-leaf readers who'll infest my home?"
"Your
physical condition is poor, Mr. Henner, and your nerves damned near the
breaking point. The solitude and privacy of this house and its grounds are
vital to your life. It would be to any parapsychic mind forced to tune in on
the emotional chaos that haunts the very air we
breathe.
You know you've been living on borrowed time for the past year. You know what
alternative dwelling accommodations will do to you."
"Do
you happen to know," asked Henner casually for he'd got control of himself
again, "the exact date of my death?"
"As
I know the exact time of mine, Mr. Henner. You will die of a heart attack, the
aorta will be closed by a globule of the arteriosclerotic matter coating your
veins, at nine-twenty-one PM, exactly one year, nine months and fourteen days
from now."
A gleam
of challenge livened the deadly intent of Henner's gaze. "And if I
don't?".
"If
you don't, then revoke the grant of Beechwoods to the Center. In the meantime,
you'll have secured your last days in the ancestral home, which is your prime
concern at the moment."
"I could have a heart transplant . .
." Henner was clearly enjoying this.
"Not
with a diseased liver and the condition of your arteries."
"And
that's your prophecy, Darrow?"
"A
medical certainty," Henry said. "I've toyed with the notion of a
transplant myself since my death will also occur from myocardial infarction on
a certain May twelfth, at ten-fifty-two PM. But by May twelfth of that year, I
intend to have accomplished the major part of what needs to be done to
establish a viable, self-sufficient Parapsychic Center in North
America..."
"On
the Beechwoods estate?"
"On
the Beechwoods estate. By May twelfth, I shall be grateful for the peace and
tranquillity of my grave."
Henner's
eyes flicked from Darrow's to some inner middle distance, the harsh cynical
lines of the financier's face softened.
"
'Ease after war, death after life does greatly please'?" The words were
softly spoken but there was no quarter in the hard look Henner then turned on
Henry Darrow.
"In
your scheming where does this house end up?"
"As
an integral part of the Center."
Henner's
expression was ironic. "And my money? I've no next of kin."
Darrow
laughed. "You keep harping on your money, Mr. Henner. We don't need your
money. Check our books on that. But only the Center can offer one of its own
members what his money hasn't been able to secure for him."
For a
long time Henner gazed out the French windows that gave on the flagged terrace,
towards the sweep of magnificent lawn and the superb beech trees. When Henner
finally turned back to Henry, his hand was extended. The two men shook three
times in the ancient custom of binding a bargain.
"Answer
me one thing, Darrow! Did you foresee winning?"
"I
knew that we would eventually secure Beechwoods, Mr. Henner," he said,
permitting regret to tinge his voice. "But I wanted your
cooperation."
"Cooperation?
You goddamn well know I had no choice!"
"Didn't
you?"
George
Henner had wandered into the Graph room just as the first of the three
Incidents was recorded. He had the habit of appearing in the various
departments, taking what he called a perverse interest in the eventual eviction
of the Center from Beechwoods. In point of fact, Henner had admitted to Molly
Darrow that the Center had given him something to live for. He'd been feeling
much better since Henry'd conned him out of Beechwoods. Despite his professed intention
of harassing Henry, George Henner's passing suggestions were usually solid
advice. And despite his crotchety and often irascible manner, the Talents
became fond of him.
"Got
a strong Incident," Ben Avedon, the duty officer,
told
Henry on the intercom just as George Henner wandered into the Graph room.
"Patsy Tucker."
In
moments, Henry and Molly arrived in time for Patsy's phone call of such details
as she'd "seen."
"I'm
on the water again," she said, breathless in an attempt to verbalize before
details escaped her. "And there're boats. Four. Sun's at a late afternoon
angle, on my left so I must be looking north. There's land beyond the boats,
pines, a bluff. And oil on the water. I can see it all rainbowy. The oil scares
me. It's going to ignite, and then the water's covered with flames and the
boats are eaten up and . . . oh, it's going to be wicked, Ben. Can you locate?
Have I given you enough? I can't remember anymore and the flames cover any
details."
"It
is a sooner?"
"Awful
soon. Today. I'm sure of it But it's morning, and I saw late afternoon... is
there time enough?"
"Sure.
Plenty of time. I'm feeding the computer with the data right now. Old didactic
will pin the place down, Pat. But have you a notion about the size of the boats
involved?"
"Oh,
yes, of course. How stupid of me. I forget you haven't seen. One's small, a
pleasure craft ... a power boat ... no sails. That's the one that goes on fire.
Two long low boats ... I guess they'd be tankers. And a higher boat... I mean,
one higher above the water . . . And they're all much too close together.
That's the problem because they'll all catch fire."
"A
pleasure boat, two tankers and a freighter in the late afternoon. That's fine,
Pat. And the pines and bluff and being close together indicate a channel of
some description. Now . . . think hard again, Pat. Did you see any markings on
the boats, funnel markings, ensigns, names?"
After a
silence Pat mournfully admitted "seeing" nothing because the fire and
smoke occluded.
"Get
one of the pyros on it," Henry told Ben. "Patsy, Henry here. That's a
good job, lass. Now take it easy.
We'll
buzz you back with confirmation. Grand work, Pat." Henry disconnected her
line, shaking his head, knowing how worried the girl would be until she heard
they'd prevented the collision. If only there'd been markings to speed up
identification, and then if the participants could be dissuaded from arriving
on the previewed scene. ... He moved deliberately to the computer panel and
began tapping out queries. "Undoubtedly a seaway. Could be Sheepshead Bay
area, East River . . . no, not there. Or one of the canals ..."
"St.
Lawrence, with tankers and freighters . . ." suggested Ben.
"Or
the Great Lakes ..." said Molly.
Before
there'd been a print-out on possible locations or what traffic was already in
the St. Lawrence Seaway, a second graph began to chatter.
"Right
on time," said Ben. "Here's Terry, our local friendly reliable
pyro."
"How
come you don't know, Hank?" George Henner asked, settling himself on a
stool in the corner.
"Not
enough people involved, George, and too close a range for me. That's Patsy's
specialty—cliff-hangers. Besides, don't you agree that the good executive makes
all the long-range decisions and leaves the picayune nitty-gritty details to
keep his staff occupied?"
George
grinned but he said nothing more, listening as intently as the others to Terry
Cle's verbalization of his "sight." The broad outline correlated with
Patsy's although he "saw" the event from a different perspective. He
had sufficient detail on one tanker and the small craft to result in exact IDs
for both from Ship Registration. And there was a tanker of the Iricoil Line
proceeding down the Seaway en route for Toronto, ETA 7:48 PM at that port. The
small craft, the Aitch Bee, was registered to an A. Frascati, and was at that
moment moored in a small boat basin on the American side of the Seaway.
Probability
figured the cost of the collision and fire at several millions and a thirty-six
hour tie-up of Seaway
traffic,
plus delayed cargoes which would complicate schedules and routines for
ninety-two companies, involving work-loss of some eighteen thousand people.
"Okay,
Ben, get out the usual warning format. See if Iricoil will listen to us."
"And
if Iricoil doesn't want to believe?"
"We
get after this Frascati. In fact, he'd be easier to bully than Iricoil but
we've got to warn them, too."
Iricoil
was suspicious and uncooperative and, in phrases just short of insult, refused to
consider diverting the tanker. Its supplies were urgently required in Toronto
by late evening. Frascati was not at his home nor in his business office.
Urgent messages were left for the man to contact the Center before taking out
his pleasure craft. Henry was dialing the Seaway Authority Control when George
cut the connection.
"I've
got an idea, Hank," George said. "I've watched this routine so often
and seen you insulted, ignored, and calumniated. No one trusts the altruist
anymore, whether he's Talented or not. You've warned Iricoil, tried to do them
a favor. They aren't buying. Well, like the puppy who leaves too many messages,
let's rub their nose in it."
"You
mean, let the accident occur?"
"More
or less. Considering what's involved in terms of credit and work-loss, and
considering that I have shares in four of the companies to be effected by the
snarl-up, will you play it my way, this once?"
Henry
began to relax. "What have you in mind, George?"
"You
did leave timed messages at Iricoil and for Frascati, didn't you?"
Ben
Avedon tapped the computer panel. "All time-sealed, George."
"Fine.
Now, issue a telex warning to Seaway Authority. Then give me a few comlines to
work from and Molly to help me. Irenee was telling me about their new
oil-pollutant at Dupont. This would be good PR for him. Always like to oblige
friends. Which reminds me, you get on to
Jim
Lawson . . . our revered Governor owes you a favor or two for that bullet Steve
stopped. And ask him for a few more VTOLs and a couple of frogmen."
"Why?"
"You
don't know?"
Henry
grinned. "Would you believe an educated guess?"
Henner
chuckled. "My, my, how the mighty have fallen... Guessing!"
"Run
the show your way, George."
"Yes,
let a pro show you how, Henry Darrow. You're too damned soft. You talk too
much. Action speaks louder than a hundred of your Talented words."
At
exactly 16:32 hours of a bright spring afternoon, an Iricoil tanker proceeding
down the St. Lawrence Seaway fouled its propeller on a tangle of steel cables,
origin unknown. The tanker drifted athwart the current as a United Line
freighter entered the narrow channel from the opposite direction. A second
tanker, also United Line, making speed enough to reach Toronto port by dark,
cruised into the danger zone, although it was apparent that the Iricoil boat
was in distress. Both United Line ships continued, evidently hoping to pass the
injured vessel, one on the port, the other on the starboard. Likely they would
have succeeded but the Aitch Bee, also impatient to reach port, came bucketing
down the searoute. It swung rather close to the distressed vessel. As Frascati
ever after maintained, he wanted to see if he could be of any assistance in
getting a message ashore: a ridiculous alibi since the tanker was well equipped
by radio and ship-shore telephone. Frascati's propellor became fouled on the
same villain cable. The freighter began to pass the disabled pair and her wash
slammed the small craft into the Iricoil tanker. The United Line tanker was broadside
of the Iricoil when her bow swung out. Tanker #2 swung to starboard to avoid a
collision and her stern banged into
Iricoil,
splitting a seam in the aft oil hold just as the small craft was ground between
the two bigger hulls. Its galley fires caught old grease and spread in the
cabin as the yacht's gasoline tank was breached. Oil pouring from the Iricoil
vessel would shortly ignite from that flame.
At this
point the hovering rescue copters intervened as newsmedia cameras recorded the
event from every angle. Foam quickly doused the yacht fire, the oil-pollution
material gobbled up the spilt petroleum and kinetics held back additional oil
loss by pressure until the teleports could get the conveniently handy plates
into position. Other kinetics and the frogmen worked loose the steel cable and
it was hoisted out of the way. "Captain" Frascati and the two crew
members (his sons) of the damaged yacht were lifted up and another team of
kinetics kept the little ship floating until the belatedly arriving coast guard
cutter could tow it into port.
The
Seaway was not blocked since all four vessels were cleared out of the narrow
channel before others made the passage. There was no loss of life and no
long-term pollution of the water. The Parapsychic teams were volubly and
embarrassingly thanked for preventing a major disaster, and by cocktail time
everyone was pleased by the denouement, especially Patsy Tucker and Terry Cle.
The
congratulatory euphoria lasted twelve hours, at which point the Seaway Authority
began to realize that matters had come to near-disaster in an unprecedented
way.
"What
was the meaning of sending us only a telex to announce a major disaster?"
the Seaway Commissioner demanded in such stentorian tones that George Henner
need not have listened in on the second comunit in Henry's office.
"You
were informed by telex, as usual," Henry replied in a mild tone of voice.
"By
telex! When countless millions of credits were at stake? And blockage of the
most important waterway in North America? And do you realize that we have only
just
balanced
the sealife ecology in that strip of waterway? That oil..."
"You
were informed..."
"Well,
I'm informing you that you're in for a suit of criminal negligence..."
"Negligence
of what, Commissioner? You were informed nine hours and thirty-eight minutes
prior to the accident by this ex-officio group, which is not a government
sponsored or accredited agency. We act for and in the public interest. But we
are understaffed and overworked. You could have queried this office for more
particulars, although all we had were included in that telex. Your Authority
could have held back any one of the four vessels involved, thus preventing
the..."
"Are
you accusing the Seaway Authority of negligence?"
Henry
held the receiver away from his ear, shook his head, and replied in his mildest
manner, "Forewarned is forearmed, sir." He caught George Henner
giving the high sign of approval.
"You'll
hear from us, Darrow. You people can't get away with irresponsible behavior
like this."
The
connection was rudely and noisily broken.
"Did
you figure a lawsuit in your calculations, George?" asked Henry.
Henner
rubbed his hands together in glee. "If they sue, we'd win."
Henry
couldn't exactly share in Henner's gleeful anticipation. The precog knew of the
multitude of lawsuits which would be served on Talents in the next decades and
the sheer cost of inspired defense made him shudder. The money would be
available but it was credit that could be used to better advantage in training
and identifying Talent, not defending against misunderstanding and greed. By
late afternoon, Henry's premonitions of immediate disaster were borne out by
additional suits of negligence which arrived from United Line, Iricoil Tankers
and A. Frascati.
"Let
me handle this," George Henner told Henry and his hastily convened
executive staff. "I don't need any crystal ball or anerodic graph needle
to tell me how to manage this sort of crap."
Before
he had Henry's voiced approval, he was on the wires to the major media
networks, chatting familiarly with presidents and commissioners. By the time
the films of the Parapsychic Center's assistance had been widely aired, with a
few choice comments on how the Center operated to forestall major disasters,
the threatened legal action against the Talents was withdrawn. Suits were
entered against the Seaway for criminal negligence. Then the Center, on George
Henner's advice ("Make 'em pay for it, when they don't listen to
you."), sent bills for the rescue operations to Frascati, United Line and
Iricoil Tankers.
"And
from now on, Henry," George said, "don't ever follow up your telex
warnings with personal phone calls. Don't be the supplicant, damn it. Be the
prelate!"
Henry
watched with inner amusement as George Henner paced up and down the floor, his
eyes flashing, even his stride firm and aggressive so that Henry could see
traces of the strengths which had amassed George Henner his considerable
fortune and which had overwhelmed less determined adversaries in the business
world.
"There's
no point in you bruising your larynx with persuasion. You've proved your worth
over and over again and this Seaway bollix ought to make a validated
Parapsychic warning worth the paper it's printed on, even at the dreadful price
of paper these days."
"A
sound argument, George, and I appreciate your help..."
George
stopped midstride, glaring at Henry through narrowed lids.
"Yes,
I am helping you, aren't I? Shouldn't do that, should I?"
"My
friendly enemy," replied Henry with a laugh.
"Ha!
Tell me that when my executors snatch the rug of Beechwoods from under your
telepathetic feet..."
"And
we need you, George," Henry raised his voice to overwhelm Henner's snide
remarks. "If I can convince a skeptic like you, I'm well away to swaying
John Q. Public to my side. He's more variable than you, and he will be the
hardest to win over."
John Q.
Public, however, quixotically decided the Seaway Authority had been foolish to
ignore the Parapsychic warning. Criticism was heaped on the Seaway from every
quarter. Later the Authority was somewhat exonerated of primary guilt since the
Court felt that good judgment on the part of any one of the other three
skippers would have prevented the accident and no costs were awarded the
claimants. The official records cited and credited the Para-psychic Center with
averting a major calamity, and loss of life and property. All Transport
Authorities were severely enjoined to heed any warnings from the Center which involved
public transport.
For the
next few weeks all precogs of traffic problems, possible fire, storm or spring
floods throughout the world were instantly acted upon. The Center was besieged
with anxious calls about whether Mr. S could undertake that long distance
flight, or Mrs. J could safely make her annual pilgrimage from Florida to
Wisconsin, and if there had been any precog about the transfer of cyanide
cylinders to the authorized Atlantic Trench dump. Thousands of hopeful people
applied for the simple tests which would indicate if they possessed some useful
Talent.
"It's
an ill wind that blows no good," Henry remarked to Molly after another
hectic day answering urgent calls and dealing with anxious queries.
"I
suppose so," she said, sinking wearily into the armchair of their private
suite in the main house. "But I wish we had more Gooseggs or a surer way
of spotting the live ones."
"Any
today?" Henry fixed Molly a stiff drink.
"Yes,"
and she brightened as if she'd temporarily gotten the event. "One very
strong receiving telepath out of forty-five aspirants." She accepted the
drink, turning the glass in her hand as if the amber liquid held some other
answer. "Henry, they come in so hopeful . . . and some of them leave so
angry and disappointed. As if we ought to be able to find what doesn't
exist..."
"Not
your fault, love. Everyone wants to be, in some way, unique, and can't realize
that being unique is a responsibility as well as a privilege. You can't cure
that How strong's the telepath?"
Molly
brightened. "I think he's very strong, but he's been blocking thoughts,
the way they all do. Out of fear. He may need a lot of training."
"No,
not too much," Henry said easily, pulling his chair close to Molly and
clasping her free hand. "Young fellow, isn't he? Welsh extraction, Welsh
name. Right?"
"I
just sent the report in ..." Molly began, startled, and stopped
mid-sentence, arrested by Henry's knowing look. "Not another one,
Henry?"
"They
do seem to appear right on schedule," Henry grinned at her but there was a
shadow in his eyes. "Right on schedule. One day I'll be wrong."
"Don't,
Henry." She clasped his hand tightly, reassuringly, knowing the strain of
his unfortunate infallibility, knowing that some of the events he foresaw he'd
rather not have seen. "And, he is, as you predicted, Welsh," she went
on in a light voice, "by name, Daffyd op Owen. Very likeable chap. He's
important?"
Henry
nodded. "He won't need more than some basic pointers and a few quiet weeks
here to wash the 'noise' out of his mind and learn to project as well as
receive."
"Well,
that's one on the plus side of the ledger." She rotated her shoulders to
ease the day's strains but Henry's disclosure about young op Owen made her feel
much better about her labors.
"When
is he moving in?"
"Don't
you know?" she asked in a bantering fashion,
"What
I know I wish I didn't. What I'd give anything to know, I have to wait and
see."
She
smiled at him lovingly. "You mean, if we retain Beechwoods?" When he
nodded, she chided him gently. "How often have you been wrong in the
merest detail?"
"It's
not how often I'm right, Molly luv, it's will I be wrong this time, this once?
This important, crucial, critical once? Such a terrible gift, luv. Terrible
when your knowledge means the loss of a friend . . ."
"Henry,
your recognition, the very challenge of the Center," and her arm gesture
encompassed all of Beech-woods, "have kept George Henner alive . . . and
kicking." She peered into Henry's face, reassuring him by touch, word and
look. "He's determined to do you out of Beech-woods, if only by a minute.
That determination alone has strengthened his hold on life. I've seen his
medical reports, Henry. I know." She leaned back in her chair. "You've
done him quite a favor and he knows it. I shouldn't be surprised if he hasn't
left the Center Beech-woods anyway."
"He
hasn't. He showed me the will."
Molly
opened her mouth to say something then thought better of it.
"All
right," Henry went on, catching her look of mischief, "so he could
write a second one in secret . . . No, we've a wager on and..."
"I
know what you mean, hoping to win the wager loses a friend."
"I
can see horizons wider than mortality but I cannot always see the sparrow
fall."
"So
young op Owen will be your successor?" George Henner was in a very testy
mood that morning. "Yes, but of course, not for some time yet..."
"You've got it all foreseen, have you?" "Certainly the basic
problems ..."
"Ha!
I thought you'd already solved the basic problems ..."
"By
no means, my friend," and Henry's laugh was mirthless. "I've had the
easy part. No, really. The establishment of the Center—and others in time in
strategic parts of the globe ... is only the first bit: scarcely the worst,
"Once
we'd elevated parapsychic Talents to a demonstrable, scientific basis, it was
only a question of some decent organizational effort to make us self-sufficient
and independent. We did dodge the governmental attempt to take control because
we operate more efficiently as a private agency and because you could imagine
the tax payers' shrieks about funding tea-leaf readers? Funding was no real
problem once we could prove Talent. Training, now . . . that is a long term
program. We've got to develop more efficient techniques in recognizing and
training Talent and that takes Talented personnel. Getting industry and the
government to accept our workers was child's play with what we can offer."
Then Henry sighed. "The suspicions of the general public can't be totally allayed
but with the help of a discreet PR program, people can become accustomed to the
Talented.
"No,
George, some of our biggest problems are yet to be solved. The knottiest one is
establishing legal protection for Talent. Without that, all we've carefully
built could be wiped away in legal fees, damages and law suits . . .
particularly against the precogs. Oh, I see that we'll get professional
immunity sooner or later. I'm greedy. I want it sooner. And that's why a
telepath like Dai op Owen is required as Director. He's more sensitive to the
immediate situation. By God, the times I've wished I were a telepath..."
George
snorted.
"It's
easier for a man who can delve into thoughts, not the future. That's
assured."
"Ha!"
Light flittered from George Henner's sunken eyes, "Not yet. You've three
days, four hours and five minutes to go."
"No,"
Henry replied gently, "no, old friend, you've three days, four hours and
five minutes to go. And I shall miss you."
"Ha
to that as well! See any new signs of decay?" George jerked his head this
way and that.
Henry
shook his head slowly. "I will miss you, you old bastard."
"Will
you? Will you when I defy your prediction and you and your Talents are thrown
out into the mass noise again?"
Henry
summoned a laugh. "Then why haven't you died long ago?"
George
glared at him. "I intend to make you sweat, Henry Darrow. Sweat. Bleed.
Die a little."
"AW
you wonder I want a telepath as a Director?" He gripped George firmly by
the shoulder and gave him an affectionate shake. "Play the enemy if it
pleases you: if the choler makes the blood continue to run in your veins.
You're more our friend than enemy. And I know it."
"Ha!
You are nervous. You're worried that you're wrong. That this time you're wrong!
I'll prove you wrong if it's the last thing I do."
Henry
cocked his head at George, grinning ironically. "You may at that, you old
bastard. I've never claimed infallibility, George. And you've heard me state
time and again that fore-knowledge of the future can alter it. . ."
"Cop
out! Rationalization!" Henner shook with triumph. "You're admitting
defeat! Ha!"
"Have
I made your day, George? Fair enough! I've got to go placate that tax man
again. See you later."
"Don't
waste your time with him. He's stupid. No way they can tax the Talents with the
structure I helped you build. And don't miss the party! The Death Party!"
"Christ,
Hank," Gus Molnar complained to Darrow, "he's had me checking him
over on the hour all day! And then that gaggle of 'impartial physician
witnesses' check on
me."
Molnar ran his hand nervously through his long fair hair, his eyes restless
with anxiety and irritation. "And suddenly he won't let Molly out of his
sight. Said her healing hands would turn the trick. Give him the minute he
needs. Goddamn old bastard!"
"Cool
it, Gus. It's what he needed to keep him alive." Henry chuckled and
straightened his tunic jacket, poked at his softly tied scarf.
Gus
made a disgusted noise in his throat. "You're so damned sure?"
"Not
at all. Unfortunately."
"Unfortunately?
With the future of the Center at stake on one man's heart beat?"
"I've
seen that we do get the property. I regret that it has to be validated by the
death of an old and valued friend. I could almost wish that he does live past
the appointed minute..."
"Minute
. . ." Molnar corrected him. "Bastard's got a huge alarm clock
rigged, to the Greenwich-mean-time minute!"
"C'mon,
Gus. Let's go to the wake and cheer the corpse on!"
"My
God, Darrow, how do you do it?"
The
Death Party was assembling, reluctantly, in the vault-roofed lounge of the
Beechwoods mansion. George had invited a select few to be "in at the
death."
Indeed,
as he said himself, he had outlasted most of his contemporaries and those three
represented today were more enemies than friends. George quipped that business
enemies had a reputation of being in at the death. He was dressed in his
Vietnam campaign battle dress, remarking that he'd cheated Him then as a
twenty-year old, so it behooved him to keep the appointment now suitably
attired. Most of those present were Talents or connected with the Center. Young
Daffyd op Owen was present. So were LEO Commissioner Mailer, trying hard not to
look uncomfortable, Governor Lawson, several Senators, representatives from
four charitable organizations (probably
benefiting
under the will, Henry decided when he saw the guest list), and the four
physicians who'd been chosen at random from the AMA directory by George and
flown into Jerhattan for the event. That was George's way of solving any
medical question. With a touch of ghoulish humor, George had decreed—not that
he didn't trust the Talents implicitly, but one had to protect oneself—that the
autopsy would be performed on his corpse immediately after death had been
assumed.
The
party consequently generated little joviality despite the abundance of liquor
and exotic foods on the sideboard. George ate sparingly, drank slowly. Anything
he consumed these days, he complained, tasted sour or flat or insipid and
caused heartburn.
Conversations
were conducted in sepulchral tones and languished easily. The occasional laugh
was quickly suppressed. Only Henry Darrow contrived to look at ease though
Molly knew, by the way he rubbed his thumb and index finger together
constantly, that he was in a highly nervous condition. She didn't dare touch
him since she was not a whit less distraught herself, and would only double
Henry's tension. The person who was suffering most was young Daffyd op Owen.
She had become very fond of the sensitive young man and wished that he didn't
have to be present. He'd not had tune to learn to shield himself, certainly not
in such an emotionally loaded situation as this. Daffyd was visibly sweating,
yet gamely trying to simulate proper party behavior as he chatted with another
young Talent, a precog named Mara Canning.
As the
appointed time drew nearer, any semblance of normality dwindled: efforts to
keep party talk going faltered. Everyone had one eye on the clock and the other
on George Henner.
"You're
supposed to be happy," George Henner complained when the current silence
remained unbroken for sixty-four seconds. "My death means you're all
safely ensconced here." His scowl was ambiguous. Then he
pointed
a finger at Henry. "So tell me, Hank, if you lose the wager, where will
you go? I ..." and he laughed hollowly, "or my executors expect you
to vacate the premises ... immediately."
"And
we will. I've assembled every telekinetic we've got.. . and a flock of physical
muscle men. We can clear the premises in an hour, I'm told. You will grant us
that much time?"
Henner
grunted, then brightly asked where the new Center would be located.
"I've
a site upstate seventy miles: woods, a small lake, very pastoral. The disadvantage
being the distance to commute. You know what copter traffic is like over the
City and the Talents are contracted to be at work on time ... no matter
what."
Henner's
chair had been wired to monitor his life-systems, and the results were
broadcast on a screen visible anywhere in the room. George glanced up at it
incuriously.
"All
systems still go?" he asked, swinging around to the nearest medical man
who, startled, nodded. "Three minutes and counting, Henry?"
"George,
may I remind you that this excitement is bad for you?" Henry said.
"Excitement
bad for me? Goddamn you, Darrow, it's kept me alive months past the estimate
those jokers gave me. You've kept me alive, damn your eyes."
"Damn
'em?" Henry laughed. "That was the point, George, and you've admitted
it before impartial witnesses, too."
Henner
pursed his thin, bloodless lips, glaring at various people in the room,
unsatisfied with his present victim's reactions and unable to vent his feelings
on anyone better suited than Henry. His restless, probing glance fell briefly
on Molly.
"Having
to leave here will put your program back, won't it?"
Henry
shrugged. "For this decade, perhaps yes. The new location will be too far
for prospective Talents in the
subbie
class to come for the test. We can have mobile units ... once we have the
personnel. Trouble is the units have to be especially constructed..."
"Yes,
yes, you've told me all that." George flounced around in his chair,
seeking a new or comfortable position as well as another victim. But he
returned to Henry. "You'll be sorry you've kept me alive. In exactly two
minutes and four seconds..."
"No,
George, I won't ever be sorry for your life. Only sorry for your death."
"I
can believe that!"
"Indeed
you can!" cried Molly, unable to bear George's taunting acrimony.
"Molly
. . ." George's voice entreated her and she instinctively stepped toward
him, her hands outstretched to give the comfort which had often eased him. But
he leaned away, suddenly suspicious even of her. Her hands flew to her mouth as
the rebuff wounded her. But his reaction broke Henry's tight control.
"Damn
it, George, she only wants to help."
"Help
me? Live? Or die!?"
Molly
began to cry, turning towards the wall. But Henry took her in his arms, for
once the comforter.
"Molly
didn't deserve that from you, George. The wager was with me!"
"He
didn't mean it that way, Henry," said young op Owen, the words bursting
from his lips, as if he'd been holding back for some time the desire to speak out.
Henner
nodded, his face flushed with what Dai op Owen afterwards said was remorse. But
the monitors began flashing warning signals.
"Hell,
Molly," George began in a choked voice, "I don't distrust you."
Then the death alarm went off. "Ha! The appointed minute . . . And I'm
alive! You're wrong, Henry Darrow. You and all your tea-leaf, table-tipping
crystal-gazing..."
At
precisely 9:00:30, George Henner's heart gave a massive contraction and
stopped. Cameras on the dead
man
recorded that his hand raised slightly, towards Henry and Molly before the dead
body collapsed.
Accustomed
as they were to the death processes, the physicians in attendance were held
motionless by the dramatic circumstances. Gus Molnar reacted first, hand moving
towards the adrenalin syringe.
"No!"
cried Dai op Owen, stepping forward, his hand outstretched. "He wants to
die. He doesn't want to win the wager."
"My
God," cried one of the physicians, pointing to the screen. "Look at
the Goosegg. It's gone wild. The mind's still alive . .. No. Consciousness has
gone. But God, look at the graph."
"Let
him go. He wants to go," Daffyd op Owen was saying.
Molnar
looked first towards Henry whose face was expressionless, then at the other
physicians staring at the monitor readings.
"That
means the brain's dead, doesn't it?" asked LEO Commissioner Mailer,
pointing to the Goosegg graph now scribing straight lifeless lines.
Two of
the medical men nodded.
"Then
he's dead," said Mailer, glancing towards the Governor who nodded accord.
"I'd say you won the bet, Darrow."
"The
wager said 'minute', I trust, not second?" asked one of the Senators.
"He
shouldn't've excited himself like that," a doctor muttered. "This
party was a mistake. Of course we weren't consulted on that. But it set up
circumstances which would obviously result in overstimulation, certain death
for a man in Henner's condition."
"Or,
there's the voodoo element in this," another physician said without
rancor. "Tell a victim often enough that he'll be dead at such and such a
time and the subconscious takes over and kills the man."
"Not
in this instance," said Gus Molnar, loudly and belligerently. "And
there's ample medical substantiation,
including
your own remarks," he added, pointing at the voodoo adherent, "that
the stimulation provided by the original bet kept George Henner alive long past
his own medical men's estimate. The bet did not cause his death, it caused his
life."
No one
ventured to refute that statement.
"I
believe," spoke up one of the attorneys present, "that the autopsy
was to be performed immediately?"
As if
on cue, two men appeared from the hallway, wheeling a stretcher. Silently they
approached, their passage unimpeded as guests stepped aside hastily. The body
was laid on the stretcher in silence. But, as the men took their positions to
leave, Molly broke from Henry's embrace. With gentle fingers, she closed the
dead man's eyes. The tears streamed down her face as she kissed George on the
forehead. The stretcher glided out of the room. No one spoke until the last
sound of footsteps in the hall was gone.
"Mr.
Darrow," said the attorney, his voice sounding abnormally loud after the
requiem silence, "I was enjoined by Mr. Henner to make a few announcements
at this time usually reserved until several days hence. I was to tell you that
this was one wager he didn't wish to win and hoped he wouldn't: no matter what
indication he gave to the contrary. He said that you were sportsman enough, Mr.
Darrow, to appreciate the fact that he had to try to win." The attorney
turned to the physician who had brought up the voodoo insinuation. "He
also ordered me to counteract any attempt to bring charges resulting from a
misinterpretation of today's sad occasion. He empowered me to say that he had
implicit trust in the integrity of all members of the Parapsychic Center.
We," and he gestured towards his colleagues, "are to be the executors
of Mr. Henner's estate, the bulk of which, excluding a few behests and
excluding these grounds now the irrevocable property of the North American
Center for Parapsychic Talents, is to go into a Trust Fund, providing legal
assistance to anyone registered with the Center who may be
imprisoned
or charged with damages or lawsuits following the professional use of their
Talent, until such time as specific laws are promulgated to give the Talents
professional immunity.". The lawyer gave Henry a wry grin. "He said,
and I quote, 'If you ride a winged horse, you'd better have a wide net when you
fall. And that takes money!'
"He
also said that after he was dead," and the lawyer faltered, embarrassed by
the inadvertent rhyme, "he said the party was to begin. That this was to
be considered a joyous occasion ..."
"He
was glad," Daffyd op Owen said, and his rather homely face lit with
happiness. "That was so astonishing. His mind, the thoughts were happy, so
happy at the moment of death. He was happy, I tell you. I know he was
glad!"
"Thank
God!" was Henry Darrow's fervent prayer. He raised his untouched drink.
"A toast, ladies and gentlemen." Glasses obediently were lifted.
"To those who ride the winged horse!"
One
after another the glasses followed Henry's into the fireplace of Beechwoods to
preserve the tribute to George Henner's memory.
A
Womanly Talent
"If
you were one whit less honorable, Daffyd op Owen," exclaimed Joel Andres
heatedly, "you and your whole Center could go ... go fly a kinetic
kite."
The
passionate senator was one of those restlessly energetic men who gave the
appearance of continuous motion even in rare moments of stasis. Joel Andres was
rigid now —with aggravation. The object of his frustration, Daffyd op Owen,
Director of the East American Parapsychological Research and Training Center,
was his antithesis, physically and emotionally. Both men, however, had the same
indefinable strength and purposefulness, qualities which set them apart from
lesser men.
"I
can't win support for my Bill," Andres continued, trying another tack and
pacing the thick-piled green carpeting of op Owen's office, "if you
consistently play into Mansfield Zeusman's hands with this irrational
compulsion to tell everything you know. If only on the grounds that what you
'know' is not generally acceptable as reliable 'knowledge.'
"And
don't tell me that familiarity breeds contempt, Dave. The unTalented are never
going to be contemptuous of the psychic abilities, they're going to continue
being scared stiff. It's human nature to fear—and distrust—what is different.
Surely," and Andres flung his arms wide, "you've studied enough
behavioral psychology to understand that basic fact."
"My
Talent permits me to look below the surface rationalizations and uncover the
..."
"But
you cannot read the minds of every single one of the men who must vote on this
Bill, Dave. Nor can you alter their thinking. Not with your thinking and your
ethics!" Joel was almost derisive as he pointed a nicotined finger
accusingly at his friend. "And don't give me that wheeze about lawmakers
being intelligent, thoughtful men!"
Op Owen
smiled tolerantly at his friend, unaffected by the younger man's histrionics.
"Not even when Senator Zeusman steals a march on us with that so apt
quotation from Pope?"
Andres
made a startled noise of exasperation, then caught the look in the other's eyes
and laughed.
"Yeah,
he sure caught me flatfooted there." He deepened his voice somewhat to
mimic the affected bass of Mansfield Zeusman:
"
'Who sees with equal eye, as God of all, A hero perish or a sparrow fall . . .'
"What
a rallying cry that is! Why didn't I think of it first? Mind you," and
Andres was deadly serious again, "that quote is pure genius ... for the
opposition. Spikes our pitch in a dozen places. The irony is that it would be
just as powerful for us if we'd only thought of it first. Dave, won't you
reconsider," Joel asked, leaning across the table to the telepath,
"eliminating the precogs from the Bill? That's what's hanging it up now in
Committee. I'm sure I could get it put on ..."
"The
precogs need the legal protection most of all," op Owen replied with
unusual vehemence, a momentary flash of alarm crossing his face.
"I
know, I know," and Andres tossed a hand ceiling-ward in resignation.
"But that's the facet of the para-psychic that scares—and
fascinates—people most."
"And
that is exactly why I insist we be as candid as possible on all phases of the
extrasensory perception Talents. Then people will become as used to them as to
finders,'
'ports' and 'paths.' Henry Darrow was so right about that."
Joel
Andres whirled back to the desk, gripping the edges fiercely. "The prophet
Darrow notwithstanding, you don't tell suspicious, frightened people
everything. They automatically assume you're holding something back because
they would. No one dares to be so honest anymore. Therefore they are sure that
what you're withholding is far worse than what you've readily admitted."
He caught the adamant gleam in Daffyd's
eye and unexpectedly capitulated. "All right. All right. But I
insist that we continue to emphasize what the other Talents are already able to
do ... in their narrow specialized ways. Once people can stomach the idea that
there are limits on individual psionic Talents, that all Talents are not mind
readers cum weight throwers cum fire dowsers cum crystal-ball-seers, all rolled
up into one frightening package, they'll start treating them as you want
Talents treated: as professional specialists, trained in one area of a varied
profession and entitled to professional immunity in that area if they are
licensed and registered with the Centers. Don't," and the hand went up
again as Daffyd tried to interrupt, "tell them you're experimenting to
find out how to broaden every Talented mind. Don't ask for the whole piece of
bread with jam on it, Dave! You won't get it, but you will get protection for
your people in the practice of their speciality, even your precogs. I'll bear down heavily on the scientific
corroboration of authentic foresights," and Andres began to pace a tight
rectangle in front of op Owen's desk, his dark head down, his gestures
incisive, "the use of computers to correlate details and estimate
reliablity of data, the fact that sometimes three and four precogs come up with
the same incident, seen from different angles. And most importantly—that the
Center never issues an official warning unless the computer agrees that
sufficient data coincides between Incident and reality..."
"Please
emphasize that we admit to human fallibility and use computers to limit human
error."
Joel
frowned at op Owen's droll interjection. "Then I'll show how the foresight
prevented or averted the worst of the Incidents. That Monterey Quake is a
heaven-sent example. No heroes perished, even if a few sparrows did fall from
gas discharges."
"I
thought it was the meddling with the sparrow's fall that perturbs Senator
Zeusman" Daffyd remarked wryly. "For want of that seed, the grain
won't sprout..."
"Hmmm,
yes, it does! 'What will be, will be,'" and Andres mimicked Zeusman's
voice again.
"Since
he initiated Pope," said op Owen, "I'd reply 'Whatever is, is right.'
"
"You
want me to turn Papist now, huh?" Joel grinned wickedly.
Daffyd
chuckled as he continued, "Pope also advises, 'Be candid where we can but
vindicate the ways of God to man!'"
The
gently delivered quote had an instant effect on the senator, comparable to
touching a match to a one-second fuse. Midway to explosion, Andres snapped his
mouth shut, sighed extravagantly and rolled his slightly yellowed eyes
heavenwards.
"You
are the most difficult man to help, Daffyd op Owen!"
"That's
only because I'm aware how carefully we must move in the promulgation of this
Bill, Joel. I don't want it backfiring at the wrong time, when some of the
basic research now in progress becomes demonstrable. The Talents can't be
hamstrung by obsolete statutes imperfectly realized on a scrabbling compromise
basis."
"Dave,
you want to run before you can walk?"
"No,
but trouble has been foreseen."
"Darrow
again, huh? Or are you hoist on your own petard?" Joel waggled a finger
triumphantly. "Trouble stemming from current non-protection. Go cast up a
precog after the Bill is passed."
"Ah-ha"
and Daffyd mimicked Joel now, "but we don't see the Bill passing!"
That
rendered Andres speechless.
"And
we are hoist on our own petard," the telepath continued with a hint of
sorrowful resignation in his voice, "because all our preventive methods
are affecting the future, unfortunately, much as Senator Zeusman presented the
syndrome in his Sparrow's Fall peroration. That was such a masterful
speech," op Owen said with rueful envy. "Valid, too, for as surely as
the Center issues a warning, allowing people a chance to avert or prevent
tragedy, they have already prejudiced the events from happening as they were
foreseen. That's the paradox. Yet how, how can ethical man stand aside and let
a hero perish, or even a sparrow fall, when he knows that he can prevent
unnecessary or premature loss."
"The
Monterey Quake could not have been prevented," Joel reminded him, then
blinked in amazement. "You're not holding out on me, are you? You haven't
found a kinetic strong enough to hold the earth's surface together?"
Dave's
laughter was a spontaneous outburst of delight at his friend's discomposure.
"No,
no. At least . . . not yet," he said just to watch the outraged expression
on Andres's mobile face.
There
were few people with whom Daffyd op Owen could relax or indulge in his flights
of humor and hyperbole. "Seriously, Joel, the Monterey Quake is a
spectacular Incident and a prime example of the concerted use of Talent,
minimizing the loss of life or property. We have never had so many precogs
stimulated in their separate affinities. And it's the most concrete example of
why precogs need legal protection. Do you realize that the Western Center was
deluged with damage suits for the tsunami that followed?"
"That
was predictable."
"But
we issued no warnings. And it's against such irrational attitudes that precogs
need legal protection more than any other Talent. Theirs is stimulated by
mental per-
ceptions
as erratic as a smell in the morning air, a glance at a photo, the sound of a
name. In a sense, precog is tremendously unreliable because it cannot be used
as consciously as telepathy, teleportation and telekinesis. And to protect the
Talent as well as the Center, we insist on computer corroboration when details
are coherently specific. We never issue a public warning until the computer
admits reliability . . . and we get damned because we have 'heard' and not
spoken. Of course, a number of our precogs have become absorbed into business
where peculiar affinities place them. For instance," and Daffyd held up a
tape-file, "this young man, who's applying for progeny approval, is a
fire-conscious. But he's one reason this city has such low fire-insurance
rates: his Talent prevents them—a blessing indirectly passed on to every
resident..."
"Hmmm,
but scarcely spectacular enough to register with the average egocentric Joe
Citizen," said Andres sourly. He was restless with Daffyd's earnest review
of facts he knew well. "However, every little bit helps, Dave, and the
public moves a lot faster pro bona pocketbook."
"True,
exactly true, and they get rather nasty when we try to save them money and will
not understand that a legitimate forewarning automatically alters the future,
even to the point of preventing the foreseen Incident which will have cost old
publican money, or time, or effort he then feels was unnecessary."
"And
there we are, right back at square one," said Joel in flat disgust.
"That is what Mansfield calls 'meddling' and what makes him fight this
Bill with every ounce of his outraged moralistic, neo-religious, mock-ethical
fibre. Remember, he's backed by the transport lobbies, and every time one of
your precogs hits that jolly little brotherhood, causing delays, hurried
inspections, the whole jazz—you got a number-one headache. Because, when the
predictions don't happen as predicted, Transport swears your meddling is
superstitious interference, un-
called
for, unnecessary and nothing would have happened anyway."
Daffyd
sighed wearily. "How many times have we found bombs? Fuel leaks? Averted
hijacks? Metal fatigue . . . mechanical justifications?"
"Doesn't
signify, Dave, not if it touches the pocketbook of the Transport Companies.
Remember, every precog implies fault: human or mechanical, since the Companies
will not recognize Providence as a force. And human or mechanical, the public
loses faith in the Company thus stigmatized. When Company profits are hit, Company
gets mad, sues the precog for defamation of character, interference, et
cetera."
"Then
we are to allow the traveling public to fry in their own juice or be spread
across the fields because a precog has seen a crash but doesn't want to offend
a Company? For want of a screw the nail was lost!" op Owen's usually
soothing voice was rough with asperity. "Damn it, Joel, we have to
preserve impartiality, and warn any one or anything that is touched by the
precognitive Talent, or we do usurp the position of the Almighty by withholding
that evidence. I don't care if the transportation companies then decide to
disregard the warning— that's their problem. But I want my people protected
when, in good faith and based on computer-accepted detail, they issue that warning.
We have no ax to grind, commercially, thanks to the Darrow endowment and member
support, but we must continue to be impartial."
"I
hope your altruism is not going to be your downfall," said Joel, his
manner unusually grave.
"There's
been no warning that it will," Daffyd replied. A hint of irritation in his
voice.
"You're
too honest to be up against us crook politicians," Joel said, grinning,
then glanced at his watch. "Wup. Gotta go."
"You
push yourself too hard, Joel. You don't look well."
"A
bit liverish, that's all, and no snooping."
"Not
without permission and you know it."
"Hah!
Among friends, I don't trust telepaths. Say, how's the recruiting
program?" Joel asked as he swooped up his travel cape and case.
"We
get hopefuls every week," the director replied as he escorted the senator
to the elevator. "Sometimes we even catch a few young ones, before they
learn to suppress a perfectly normal ability."
"That's
another phrase you should delete around Zeus-man," Joel said. "He
will not buy your premise that every mind has psionic Talent."
"But,
Joel, that is scientifically valid. We know that those who possess Talent have
strong, healthy twenty-first chromosome pairs. It is certainly admissible
evidence that when the twenty-first is blurred or damaged to any degree, brain
function is inhibited. And, with the Downs's Syndrome, you have mental
retardation."
"Don't
beleaguer me," Joel said with widened eyes of innocence, "I
believe!" He laid a hand on his heart. "I couldn't doubt—not after
that 'finder' located my brother in the mine shaft before he bled to death. If
we could only subject Mansfield Zeusman to such an experience, he wouldn't be
so skeptical. Can't one of your pet Talents do something about that? I thought
they always keep an eye on controversial men to prevent assassination and
stuff."
Op Owen
gave a snort. "Would Senator Zeusman honor a precog foreseeing his own
demise?"
"Hmmm.
Probably not. Say, you're not funded on the Government Research Program, are
you?"
"No,
thank God. The Henner Bequest was reserved for that. Why?"
"Hmmm.
Just that Zeusman is extending this argument against the Bill to all
'specious'—as he terms it— forms of research, government funded. And spring is
appropriations time, you know."
"Fortunately,
we've never had that kind of pressure."
"Talented
of you," Joel said with a grin.
Behind
him the elevator door slid open and a young woman, obviously in a hurry, ran
out, right into the muscular frame of the young Senator.
She
blurted out an apology, flushing with embarrassment as Andres reached out to
steady her. Then her eyes opened wider as she saw op Owen and one hand flew to
her mouth. "I'm awfully sorry, sir."
Just as
Daffyd recognized Ruth Horvath, he also identified the combined emotions of
shame at her precipitous arrival into a distinguished champion of the Talented,
regret for her impulsiveness in coming to the Tower at this hour, and the
underlying hope and apprehension that had compelled her to come. Instinctively,
Daffyd touched her with soothing reassurances: but Joel Andres's amiable and
admiring glance was the tonic the pretty woman needed.
"No
harm done, I assure you, Miss ... ?"
"Mrs.
Horvath . . . Senator Andres," Daffyd said and watched Joel's expression
change from delighted interest to flattering chagrin.
"I
do apologize, Senator," Ruth repeated, her cheeks blush-stained again.
"And
I apologize for being in the wrong place at the wrong tune and . . ." an
extravagant sigh "... too late." He bowed deeply to Ruth, reluctantly
stepping aside to let her pass.
Instead
she fumbled with the elevator button.
"I'm
on my lunch break," she said with a stammer. "I've got to get
back."
The
panel slid open and Andres stepped in beside her, one ringer jamming the
"hold" button.
"Me,
too," he said, grinning down at her.
"Your
file is on my desk right now, Ruth," Daffyd said, suddenly comprehending
the reason for her visit and her hesitancy in mentioning the subject in
Andres's presence. "I'll call you tomorrow."
Her
face lit up, her eyes became eager and, as she glanced away, Daffyd thought he
saw the shine of tears.
"Take
care of yourself, Joel. You're working too hard."
"A
pleasure, I assure you." Joel's laugh was cut off by the closing door.
Daffyd
op Owen stood looking at the indicator panel for a few moments before he turned
slowly back to his isolated tower office. He had much to think about. Not that
he would deflect one centimeter from his course of action. Only his firm beliefs
sustained him for it didn't require precog, only intelligent
extrapolation—which some uninformed people insisted was the essence of
precog—to determine the difficulties still faced by the Talented all over the
world. The Bill was so vital a forward step, raising the Talents from the
onerous category of "mental chiropractors," (Senator Zeusman's
phrase, though chiropractic treatment had long been an accredited branch of
medicine), to a creditable position among professional abilities. Mansfield
Zeusman had already stalled the Bill in Committee for months, was capable of
stalling it through the summer, and keeping it off the agenda next year. The
senator was hoping to find some discrediting Incident that would forever banish
hope of legal protection for the Talented.
The
sheer genius of that Pope quotation was a measure of their opponent's worth, op
Owen mused as he turned to the mass of administrative files awaiting him. The
pity of it was that the quote would have been much more applicable to the Talent
side of the argument. Come to think of it, much of Pope's "Essay on
Man" was to the point.
Other
pertinent lines came easily out of mental storage. Not much that Daffyd op Owen
had once seen could elude his recall.... a blessing as well as a handicap.
With
too much knowledge for the Skeptic side, With too much weakness for the Stoic's
pride, He hangs between, in doubt to act or rest: In doubt to deem himself a
God or Beast: In doubt his mind or body to prefer Born but to die and
reasn'ning but to err...
"Enough!"
and op Owen roused from introspection to direction. He flipped open the nearest
tape case and slapped it into the playback. It seemed somehow meet that it was
the Horvaths's progeny application. Were op Owen a superstitious man he could have
accounted it a good omen: a favorable auspice for the work he and his fellow
directors around the world were inaugurating. Breed like to like, strengthen
strong genetic Talent traits and develop, not the super race of omniscient,
omnipotent superpeople Zeusman basically feared, but people trained and
conditioned from childhood to use their Talents for the benefit of man. And, by
such service, force the World to recognize the treasure that can be unlocked in
the unused, untapped portion of the human brain.
A
flaming, shattering precog caught Lajos Horvath at the moment when REM sleep
was over and his unconscious mind was rousing from that phase of rest.
His
groan of anguish awakened his wife instantly. With the reflex of training. Ruth
flipped the recorder and pulled the retractable electrode Goosegg net to his
head, expertly clamping the metal discs on the circles of his scalp that had
been permanently depilated.
Blinking
her eyes to see the reading in the dawn-dim room, Ruth watched the definite
pattern of an Incident emerge. Center was already picking it up for
authentication. The Incident lasted a scant eleven seconds before the brain
waves settled back to a calm reading. She lay back, going through the
discipline that would relax her and prevent her from imposing her haste-urgency
reaction on Lajos. As soon as he roused, she must be composed enough to
question him for a verbal report.
She
achieved the proper repose quickly, suppressing the thrill of satisfaction at
her success. She was no longer as troubled by flashes of envy that Lajos
possessed a valid Talent while hers was so nebulous as to elude identification.
Now it was enough for her to know that,
by the
exercise of the deep empathy which existed between them, by her womanliness, she
made his development more certain. Lajos needed her as a buffer, a source of
solace from the sharp edges of Talent. Even the strongest personality could
succumb to the Cassandra complex that destroyed the sanity of the unwary
precog. Why was it, Ruth mused in a quiet inner voice, that tragedy has such a
vicious way of reaching out of the mists of the future: like a falling man,
blindly grabbing at anything to restore balance and avert his fall?
Again
the needle rushed across the graph, a slight whoosh barely audible in the quiet
room. Ruth glanced over to make sure the Incident was being beamed to the
Center and noticed the smile on her husband's face. A smile? A happy
premonition? She forced herself to relax, unaccountably assailed by a raving
curiosity. Lajos so rarely had happy foresights, and fleetingly she regretted
that he was a precog.
Lajos
stirred restlessly. He was waking now. She turned on the voice recorder and
leaned towards him.
"What
is it? What do you see?" she asked in the soft persuasive voice the Center
had taught her to use at these times. Her ability to stimulate his verbal
accounts was highly praised, for it was sometimes difficult for the precog to
articulate the semi-real into sufficient detail for preventive or supportive action.
"Flames!"
Lajos groaned. "Must it always be flames?" He sat bolt upright in bed
then, his brown eyes wide as he stared straight ahead at the retinal image of
his premonitory vision. The electrodes were jerked from his skull, retracting
with a metallic clink into the case. "The ship's burning, exploding.
Throwing flaming debris across the harbor into the suburbs. Damp it! Deflect!
Shield those passengers. Watch out! The propellant will spray. It's exploding.
Contain it!"
"Markings
on the liner?" a gentle but insistent voice whispered from the intercom.
Lajos
shook his head, blinking furiously in an attempt to
hold
the fading sight. "It's awash with flame. I think I see an eight, a four,
a three—or is it another eight? It's a Reynarder. It must be. They're the only
ones who use that class."
"Which
class?" the inexorable whisper wanted to know. Suddenly Lajos sagged,
panting with shock, cold sweat breaking out on his forehead. He lay back
exhausted. "It's gone," he moaned. "It's gone." "You had
a second one," Ruth said. "What was that about?"
Lajos's
brows drew together in a half frown as he brushed his straight black hair out
of his face. He kept it overlong to hide the depilated circles where the
electrodes fit. His lips curved in a half-sided smile. "Something
good?" he asked hopefully.
Ruth
suppressed her sigh. Lajos rarely detailed the felicitous ones.
"Incident
validated, a strong reading, Lajos," the intercom voice said. "Report
in as soon as you're able."
"They'll
check it out, won't they?" Lajos asked needlessly.
"Action
already initiated."
Lajos
lay so still that Ruth knew it was not passive quiescence but rigid strain.
Another thorn in the Talented's side was the harsh realization that their
warnings were often disregarded and they were forced to see
their predictions come horribly true. Ruth wiped the sweat from Lajos's
forehead and began to massage his neck and shoulders. After a moment he grinned
weakly up at her. "What a way to start the day, huh?" "At least
you ended on a happy note. Maybe that means they'll prevent?"
"If
they can correlate enough data, in enough time," he said gloomily.
"And Reynarder bothers to listen!" He flopped onto his stomach,
pounding the mattress with impotent fists.
Ruth
transferred her attention to his muscular back. She loved the line of him, the
broad double plateau of
his
shoulder blades with the small mounds of hard muscle, the graceful curve that
swept down to the narrow waist, the hollow of his spine, the Grecian beauty of
his buttocks. She quickly suppressed a flare of desire. This was not the time
to intrude sex on his personal anguish. And she knew that her intense sexual
hunger for him stemmed from a yearning for the child of his seed. A daughter,
tall and fair, with Lajos's dimples in her cheek. A son, strong-backed and
arrogant, with thick black straight hair.
This
hunger for his child was so primal, it paralyzed the sophistication overlaid by
education and social reflexes. Nowadays a woman was expected to assume more
than the ancient duties required of her. Nowadays, and Ruth smiled to herself,
the sophists called those womanly talents, Maintenance, Repair and Replacement,
instead of housekeeping, cooking, nursing and having babies, but the titles
didn't alter the duties nor curb the resurgent desires. And, when you got down
to it, men still explored new ground, even if it were alien lands, and defended
their homes and families. You could call Lajos's precog a kind of an
early-warning defense system. Well, then, she'd added the chore of being
Cerebral-Recording Secretary to Maintenance and Repair but they'd better let
her Replace soon or....
She
concentrated on more soothing thoughts, using her latent empathy to ease his
remorse. When he began to take deep long breaths, she knew he was conquering
the aftermath of the Incident, dispelling its destructive despondency. He had
done everything he could. He could not change the course of every fated life.
Some events had to come to their dire conclusions, for out of present tragedy
so often rose future triumph; the result of sorrowful recriminations was often
the catalyst of progress. A specious rationale in the Silver-lined Cloud
Approach but true enough to save the sanity of the Talented.
It was
a bitter thing, Ruth understood, to be Talented: bitter and wonderful. But it
was worse to have evidence of Talent and never know what it was. Nonsense, she
told
herself
sternly, discarding these reflections, you can't be what you can't be.
"Ahh,
you've got the right spot," Lajos said gratefully and she doubled her
efforts across the heavy shoulder muscles.
And
yet, when she anticipated his desires and needs, sometimes the words from his
mouth, she wondered just how she had tapped that need; just what might awaken
the occluded Talent within her.
The
Center believed that psionic abilities were latent human characteristics: their
absence due to malfunction of the necessary brain synapses or, even more
basically, underdevelopment due to a protein lack in the gene. When chromosomes
in the twenty-first pair were damaged or blurred, no Talent was detected. There
was no aberration in Ruth's chromosomes, and although she tested as Talented,
her ability was unidentifiable. She had never been able to stimulate an
Incident involving any of the known abilities. She'd met Lajos during her
testing: they'd been approached by the Eastern American Center after finishing
their secondary schooling and had qualified for the six-months' training
designed to stimulate latent Talent. Their genetic history had been taped back
to the fourth generation. They had endured hours of cerebral recording on the
Goosegg under a variety of stimuli. Ruth was finally labeled
"indeterminate"; Lajos showed strong precog tendencies.
Ruth
still secretly hoped that her Talent would develop. She'd been assured that
this was a possibility: they cited her high empathy rating, her ability to
anticipate attitudes and actions of those nearest and dearest to her. True, she
might be no more than a receptive telempath, one unable to broadcast but
receptive. Ruth therefore alternated between hope and despair: being a
practical creature, she dwelt mostly on the pessimistic side of the pendulum,
refusing to believe anything but the most conclusive evidence. This attitude
was reinforced during Lajos's worst Incidents, when she wanted no part of the
cruel gift.
Lajos
Horvath was one of several thousand Talented people, licensed and registered
with the Center; devoted to its precepts and ideals, contributing all of his salary
to it. The Center was not paternalistic, nor did it require any recompense. But
the Talented preferred to live together, if possible, on or near, the Center's
grounds at Beech-woods, among their peers: reassured and reinforced. As the
Center "policed" its own members, it also protected them.
Ruth
had no specific objections to their situation: she had willingly taken the
course orienting unTalented partners to their gifted spouses. She would have
undergone a far more arduous requirement, so deep was her love of Lajos. But
lately, obedience to E.A.C. had begun to gall Ruth and it was not due to any
fault of the Center's. She recognized that.
The
muted buzz of the intercom roused both of them. Lajos propped himself up on his
elbows, his profile towards her so that she observed the thin bitter line of
his mouth and knew that he was steeling himself.
"Lajos,"
it was Daffyd op Owen, "you were correct. A class 7 Reynarder had a
propellant leak at Buffalo jet-port."
Something
in the director's slow deep voice told them that Lajos's information had not
averted.
"And?"
Lajos's question was a firm demand for the truth.
"We
had to compute the variable details with the possible airports near water,
flights landing or departing on the Reynarder line. We got only one other
personal precog involving the Incident but your data alone— particularly the
registry—was sufficient. The loss would have been catastrophic without your
warning. Teleports on the Rescue Squad deflected most of the flaming wreckage into
the Lake before it could land in the suburbs. Kinetics managed to shield the
passenger deck until the propellant could be foamed. The passengers and crew
suffered
massive heat prostration but all will live. Ruth, does he need a
tranquillizer?"
"No!"
the negative exploded from Lajos's lips.
"Good
lad!" op Owen's voice was warm with approval. "We've authenticated
the Incident. It averted a major tragedy: one more pound of evidence on our
side of the scales for the Bill. And the passengers and jetport personnel know
who gave the warning."
Lajos
went limp with relief as the Director signed off with expressions of gratitude.
Lajos half-turned his face and Ruth didn't know for a moment whether to comfort
him or not. She waited. Finally he gave a long shuddering sigh and relaxed, one
hand slipping over the side of the bed, fingers limp, the veins in his forearm
bulging, blue under his unusually fair skin.
"Then
what I saw—didn't happen, Ruth. The jet didn't turn into a flaming hull,
exploding all over the suburbs. So what did I see? Which didn't happen because
I saw it? Because my seeing it was sufficient to alter the future?" He
shook his head, his beard stubble rasping against the tightly drawn bedsheet,
but his voice was no longer hoarse with recrimination; it was calm: his
philosophy was asserting itself.
Ruth
felt the muscles in her shoulders unknot and only then realized how tense she
had become, waiting for his reaction.
"
'A paradox, a paradox, a most ingenious paradox,'" she chanted lightly,
stroking his back with her fingertips. "My darling pirate," and she
kissed his cheek.
Lajos
bounced out of bed and stretched, his sleep-pants falling off his narrow hips.
He grabbed them back up, not out of modesty but to keep from tripping over them
on the way to the bathroom.
"Maybe
the good precog you had ... it followed a bare sixty seconds after the first,
you know," Ruth remarked later as she served his breakfast, "was the
realization that you had averted."
Lajos
considered that, then shook his head. "No. The two were definitely
non-related."
"Why
is it," Ruth asked with mock shrewishness, "that you can detail the
horrors but not the happies?"
He
didn't know and began to eat heartily, his appetite indicative of restored
equilibrium.
"Got
to run, honey. Be a busy day. And that's no precog. It's a sure thing." He
grinned then kissed her soundly. "Annual review of contracts, and Zeusman
notwithstanding, the Firm handles the government's insurances in this
city."
Ruth
would have to hurry as well. She disliked being late although her job was not
essential. She fitted filaments to fractional feeders, an intricate, delicate
operation which required deft hands even with waldo-aids, and a certain
tenacious patience with micro-movements. Her employers never objected to her
occasional delays as they employed teleports and telekinetics for the
transportation of delicate equipment and to assemble by remote control the
"hot" components of instrumentation to be used in the Jupiter probes.
Ruth did not need to work, for Lajos was highly paid, but she preferred to keep
busy until their request for progeny was approved. She wanted so to be a
full-time mother.
There
was unlikely to be a problem in receiving approval—eventually—but anyone was liable
to pick up a dose of accidental radiation that could blur or damage
chromosomes. They knew their genetic patterns were sound and they had completed
the three years' probation to establish the compatibility and stability of
their marriage. For the last six months they had undergone continual egg and
sperm cell check for possible aberrations. It was time-consuming, but who
wanted a handicapped child? It had taken years to weed out the psychedelic
damages that had resulted in the freaks of the late Seventies and early
Eighties. There were still occasional mutants as a result of the heavy Solar
Winds in the first
decade
of the twenty-first century. It was only common sense to check every variable.
But
Ruth found it hard to be patient. She asked for very little of what her
heritage had once seemed to offer. She didn't mind being an unidentifiable
Talent, she had adjusted to it. She didn't really mind the often worrisome role
of a passive observer to the mental agonies of Lajos's perceptions: she loved him
and she helped him. She did mind the growing sense of futility. Nowadays, with
shelter and food assured one, with the excitement of space explorations to
capture the imagination, with leisure to develop interests and hobbies,
everyone had the opportunity to use their full capabilities, yet she was
constantly frustrated. If only she could be a full woman to Lajos, not just
caring for him, but raising his children, preferably his Talented children! She
would do everything in her power to make sure they would succeed where she had
failed.
On his
firm's table of organization, Lajos Horvath was listed as a "Contract
Analyst and Underwriter" of the Eastern Headquarters of the Insurance
Company. Conservative in so many areas, the insurance field had been one of the
first major industries to see the advantages of staff 'precogs'; particularly
one such as Lajos whose accuracy in fire-hazard control had been established
beyond question.
Most of
his precognitive Incidents dealt with flaming substances, as other precogs
seemed to have reliable affinities for water, autos, metals or certain types of
personalities. There was a friendly debate within the Center whether
"finders" were precogs or clairvoyants, but they had affinity for
"lost items," organic and inorganic. There were four in Lajos' Firm,
and they represented huge annual savings for their employers.
Once
Lajos's precogs would have been ascribed to astuteness or hunches or shrewd
extrapolations. Indeed, he himself was perfectly willing to put the vaguer ap-
prehensions
under that generality. But training and sensitivity had sharpened many
"hunches" into definitive perceptions: Check the cellar of that
building for dangerous refuse, the janitor is lazy and has not discarded all
possible combustibles. The wiring in that attic is frayed and the owners tend
to overload their circuits with heavy-draw appliances. Sometimes the Incident
was sustained: This building will be vandalized, fire is involved. The police
were then requested to keep that building under surveillance. The surveillance
was sufficient to prevent the breaking and entering which Laps had predicted,
but the Company had long ago learned not to protest the measures suggested by
their perceptives. Insurers are accustomed to statistics, and Talents saved
them too much in claims. Sometimes, as that morning, Lajos would experience a
general alarm, touched off by the imminence of a violent fire, or a sudden
flaring of fire-danger resulting from a vehicular crash. There were days when
nothing activated his Talent. And days, of which this was one, when everything
seemed to smell vaguely of smoke or be wreathed in ghostly flames. He had to
censor half a dozen false impressions by checking them against the small office
Goosegg. He had learned to differentiate the valid precogs: that was why he was
licensed and registered by the Center.
He
finished the pile of contracts, noting those about which he experienced
twinge-hesitations that indicated a future review would be wise. On his way
home, he suddenly felt a lightness of spirit, an ebullience quite unaccountable
after his strenuous day. He didn't try to analyze it, too delighted with the
relief to want to question the source. But, as he opened his door, Ruth raced
into his arms.
"We've
been approved as parents," she cried, clasping him tightly to her in an
excess of elation. "Director op Owen himself called me just a few minutes
ago. You ought to have been home when he called."
"Which
proves that op Owen is no precog," Lajos said with a chuckle as he pressed
her soft slenderness to
him. He
buried his lips into the curve of her neck. "That's an anodyne for this
morning."
"Why
for this morning?" she asked, pulling back and searching his face with
worried eyes.
"Oh,
it's all right, sweetie, but he knew I'd hear all the details. Reynarder Inc.
was warned the instant my Incident identified the ship but they refused to
issue a blanket halt on all outgoing and incoming vessels with those numerals.
Reynarder's money is back of the Transport Lobby and they support Zeusman, you
know. They can't admit that Incidents, backed by cerebral variations,
computer-sorted, validated by the Center are NOT superstitious nonsense. But a
lot of people check out their flights nowadays with a licensed precog."
"Then
I say that companies like Reynarder deserve what they get!"
"Hey,
we can afford not to be petty. And besides, I want to talk about us: about our
child. What'll we have first? Boy or girl?"
Ruth
stiffened in his arms and pulled back to look her husband straight in the eye.
"Do
we have to specify? Does it have to be predetermined?" she asked in a
small voice, aware even as the words popped out that she sounded resentful.
"Oh, I don't mean it that way. It's just that when you predetermine, it
takes away all the mystery that's left to motherhood."
"Ruthie,"
and Lajos's tender teasing voice thrilled her. "You're a real recessive.
O.K., we'll just let nature take its course."
"Can't
we eat first?"
Lajos
threw back his head and laughed boyishly at her deliberate coquetry. He hugged
her until he heard her ribs crack and her dinner sizzling.
It was
a magical night. Ruth responded to lovemaking with an ardor that astounded her
husband: a surrender that left him breathless and not a little awed: as if,
sloughing off the onus of contraceptive interference, she
could
allow herself to be touched to the depths of her being.
If the
quality of their loving had anything to do with the final product, their child
ought to be a perfect human, Lajos thought as they finally fell asleep in each
other's arms. There was no guarantee that conception occurred that night. In
fact, Lajos hoped that it hadn't if Ruth would react like this until she did
conceive.
Shortly,
however, it was apparent that conception had occurred. Ruth developed a
luminous beauty that touched everything around her with harmony. Jerry Frames,
the Center's resident physician, with a healing talent, privately told op Owen
that the foetus was female and that Ruth was healthy enough to experience no
problems.
The
girl weighed seven pounds and three ounces at birth and was immediately
christened the Little Princess by the nursery staff in the Center's hospital.
Her parents called her Dorotea and were utterly besotted with her miniature perfection,
her pink-and-gold beauty. They were oblivious to the curious stares and
whispered comments of the staff. It was Ruth, preternaturally sensitive to
anything regarding her daughter, who began to notice the surreptitious glances,
the cluster of people constantly near her daughter's crib.
"You're
hiding something from me," she told Jerry Frames accusingly. "There's
something wrong with Dorotea."
"There's
not a thing wrong with her, Ruth," Jerry replied sharply and thrust the
baby's chart at her. "You've enough pediatrics to read the medical
notations. Go ahead."
Ruth
scanned the sheets quickly, then reread word and graph, checking the laboratory
reports of body function, the cerebral and cardiac readings, even the
nourishment intake and eliminations. There was definitely nothing abnormal
about Dorotea. Even her chromosome mapping was XX/healthy/normal. Reassured,
Ruth passed the clip-
board
back, and smiling confidently, continued to nurse her child.
Frames
later said that he'd had a moment of pure panic because he couldn't remember
how much genetic training Ruth had had or might remember. Op Owen assured him
that his instinctive impulse had been the only possible course under the
circumstances.
"It's
exceedingly fortunate, though, Jerry," the director said, his eyes active
with speculation, "that they are already under the Center's protection.
That child must have every safeguard we can provide. I want equipment installed
in her nursery, tuned to her pattern day and night. If what we suspect is
correct, it may manifest itself in her first six months. Can you imagine the
strides we can make in formulating an early childhood program with such a
superb example?"
"A
pure case of doing what comes naturally."
"Nothing
must interfere with that child's development."
"I
still don't see why we've kept it from the parents. Are you stepping down from
your 'know-all, tell-all' pedestal after all?"
Op Owen
returned the physician's sardonic look.
"I'm
not a precog, but I felt a strong reluctance to inform Lajos."
"Why?
He'd be walking nine feet tall to think he produced such a Talented
child."
"Haven't
we changed sides, Jerry?"
"It's
one thing to withhold information from the unwashed public, but another to clam
up on one of the gang."
"We
don't know positively that Dorotea Horvath is ..."
"Come
off it, Dave. Cecily King is a strong TP and she heard that child protest
birth. Oh, I know that some of 'em can cry out in the womb but this was no
physical cry or it would have been audible to the rest of the delivery room
personnel. Is your stumbling block Ruth Horvath?"
Op Owen
nodded slowly.
"Well,
that makes a little more sense, although I'd say she'd welcome her daughter's
Talent. A kind of vindication that she's never been identified. Unless you call
the transmission of strong genetic traits a Talent."
Op Owen
shook his head, his lips pursed in thought. "She has wanted a child
desperately. As a mother wants a child: not as a Talented person wants evidence
of succession." He spoke slowly, the words dragged out of his mouth as if
he were sorting the thoughts. "Lajos says that although Ruth is a great
help and very understanding, sometimes his Incidents bother her more than she
admits. Let's just let things take their course. We'll keep an eye on
them."
"What
they don't know won't hurt them, huh?" Frames sighed. "Wish you'd let
that attitude spill over into other areas, Dave."
Op Owen
regarded the doctor intently. "I can conceivably bend a little privately,
for the benefit of those under my care, but I cannot as easily rationalize the
broader issue which I cannot oversee or control."
"All
right, Dave, but I feel, and Joel Andres feels, that private reactions are a
strong basis for predicting public ones. You're reluctant to tell Ruth Horvath,
a girl conditioned and trained to accept Talent, that her child shows
exceedingly strong telepathic Talent. You willingly want to broadcast
information that even frightens me, and I'm Talented, to a public that is in no
way conditioned to accept a fragment of that knowledge. The two attitudes
cannot be reconciled."
"The
ethical position of the Talented must never be questioned."
"Dave,"
and there was entreaty in Jerry Frames's voice and manner, "you are unable
to be unethical. The withholding of prejudicial knowledge is not unethical,
it's plain good ol' common sense. Which you are sensibly applying to Ruth
Horvath's case. How many times I have considered telling a patient he's bought
it and how few times have
I
actually come clean. Very few people can stand the whole, complete, unvarnished
truth."
"I
hang between, in doubt to act or rest," op Owen said, resigned as well as
frustrated.
"What's
that?"
"I
apologize, Jerry. Your point is well taken. I've erred—on the side of the
angels, I hope—but this attitude of mine towards Ruth Horvath is a curious
vacillation from my tendency to be forthright. Yet I know that there is a
reason to be slightly devious."
"Then
you'll ease back on this all-open-and-above-board routine?"
"Yes,
I'll ease back as you put it."
"Still,"
and Jerry frowned slightly, "it isn't as if they won't find out soon
enough." He meant the Horvaths.
"They
need time to get used to the idea." Op Owen was thinking about humanity.
"Where
on earth did she get those blue eyes?" Lajos asked as he sat entranced by
his three-month-old daughter's attempts to capture her toes. She flopped over,
gurgling cheerfully to herself.
"Heavens,
it's possible," Ruth replied, beaming fatuously as she caught her
daughter's eye. "I may be grey-eyed, and you brown, but we both have
ancestors with blue eyes—four generations back."
"I
always said you were recessive, hon."
"Humph.
I don't mind in the least, not if it produces a blue-eyed blonde daughter with dimples.
And I've got her, haven't I, love? You're all mine."
"Except
for the twenty-three chromosomes from me."
Dorotea
twisted her head backwards over her shoulder and burbled moistly at her mother.
"Love
at first bite," Lajos said in a mutter of mock surliness. "There's a
conspiracy of females against this poor lone male."
Dorotea
impartially gurgled at him, her eyes bright and wide and happy.
"You
never had it so good," said Ruth.
And
Lajos privately admitted the truth of that. Ruth was so enthralled with her
daughter, their apartment had a noticeable atmosphere of benevolence. He was
more relaxed than ever, and despite an increase in Incidents, extending beyond
his usual affinity, he suffered less from the depressions and exhaustions that
were the inevitable postlude.
The day
Dorotea's Talent blossomed, Daffyd op Owen was reviewing the records obtained
overtly and covertly from the Horvath apartment. He'd had Lester Welch, his
electronic chief, rig a buried web in Ruth's mattress, in case the baby
instinctively contacted her mother first. However, Lester had pointed out the
slight variation in Ruth's readings. It was more as if the needle had snagged
itself on an imperfection in the graph paper. There was no such variation on
the baby's recordings. Welch had been about to discredit the occurrences until
he checked them against Lajos's and discovered that the minute variations in
Ruth's chart always occurred exactly at the onset of Laps' Incidents.
"She
might well be a latent 'receiver,'" op Owen said to Welch, "only now
beginning to develop from continued proximity to her husband and the advent of
the child. I can't present another explanation."
"That'd
be nice, Dave. Ruth's a good little person: cheerful, intelligent and crazy for
her husband and child. Just the sort of well-balanced, understanding parent to
have for a..."
Lester
was abruptly staring at op Owen's retreating back. The man had leaped to his
feet and raced down the hall to the recording room. Lester Welch was not Talented,
although his electronic engineering was often sheer inventive genius, but op
Owen didn't react like that without good cause. When Welch reached the doorway,
he saw that Charlie Moorfield, the day engineer, was hunched over
the
console, unconscious, but op Owen's attention was for a graph.
"Take
a close look at Dorotea's graph," op Owen said, grinning fit to pop his
jaw, and then he passed his associate on his way out.
Common
sense told op Owen that, despite the urgency of the summons, there could be no
danger threatening the baby. Yet he could not disregard that call. What could
have happened, he wondered as he ran down the front steps. Suddenly he noticed
that there seemed to be a mass exodus from all parts of the building. And
everyone was headed in the same direction. As abruptly as the call had been
issued, it ceased. People slowed down, stopped, looking around, grinning
foolishly.
"What
was that?" "Who called?" "Wot hoppened?"
"It's
all right," op Owen found himself reassuring them. "A new technique
improperly shielded," he said to the telepaths. And grinned at his own
dissembling as he continued towards the Horvath's apartment.
There
was a crowd in the hall before their apartment Op Owen politely pushed his way
through the disturbed residents. Dorotea, her baby face still tear-streaked,
was held high in her mother's arms, cooing and chortling at the smiling faces
around her. Op Owen's arrival signaled the crowd's discreet dispersal and
shortly, he was alone with the mortified mother.
"I'm
so embarrassed, sir," Ruth said, jiggling her baby as she walked nervously
up and down her living room. "I fell asleep with the tape recorder blaring
away. And I just. . . didn't hear Dorotea wake up ... I've never done such a
thing before and we've never permitted her to cry long..."
"No
one is remotely suggesting that you mistreat Dorotea." Op Owen smiled as
the baby flirted delightfully with him. "In fact a little honest
frustration is very useful. It certainly placed her Talent."
"Ooooooooh,"
and Ruth collapsed on the sofa, staring wide-eyed at Daffyd op Owen as she
absorbed the im-
plication,
which she had been too preoccupied with calming Dorotea to see.
"She
broadcast a very loud signal. I shouldn't be at all surprised if every Talent
in the city heard her."
No
sooner were the words out of his mouth than Lajos charged through the door.
"What
happened to her? How did she get hurt? My head is splitting!" Lajos
snatched Dorotea from her mother's lap to examine her firsthand. She began to
whimper, catching his anxiety.
"Only
her feelings were hurt," Ruth replied, suddenly very calm. Op Owen noticed
that with approval: she was dampening her own distress to soothe the others.
"I'd fallen asleep with the tape recorder blasting away and just didn't
hear her when she woke up hungry and all damp." She took her daughter
back, rocking her until the baby began to beam again. "She was hurt
because she felt she was being ignored, isn't that right, sweetie?"
"Well,
good god!" Lajos sank onto the couch, mopping his forehead. "I never
heard anything like it before. Sir," and he turned to op Owen, "look,
this can't ... I mean, can this sort of thing happen every time my daughter's
upset?"
"Oh,
I'm sure she's likely to protest many assumed indignities, Lajos. Babies have
to suffer some frustrations to grow. We'll just move you all to a shielded
apartment and dampen down that lovely loud young voice."
"You're
not surprised about Dorotea at all," Ruth said, regarding op Owen with round,
suspicious eyes. "So that's why everyone was so excited about her in the
nursery."
"Well,
yes," the Director agreed slowly. "She was heard by the TP nurse at
birth."
"But
I thought psionic Talents don't usually show up until adolescence ..."
"Conscious
Talent," op Owen said, correcting her.
Ruth
looked down at the drooling baby in her arms. A strained look crossed her
pretty face. "But I want Dorotea to have a normal, happy childhood!"
"And
she won't because she's Talented? Is that it, my dear?" Op Owen knew,
sadly, that his instinct about not telling Ruth at once had been all too
well-founded. "Except for this ability, which might as well be drawing
freehand, she is a normal, healthy child, totally unaware that she is in any way
remarkable ..."
"But
I know you'll want to test her, and all that, with stimuli . . ." Ruth's
distress was so acute that she couldn't go on.
"Ruth!"
Lajos bent to comfort her, surprised by her reaction. She clutched her daughter
tightly to her.
"My
dear Ruth!" op Owen said gently, "testing and stimuli are for people
who come to us after they have subverted and suppressed their Talents. We know
what Dorotea is already, a very strong telepath. And we've been 'testing' her,
as you call it, already. As for stimuli, I assure you," and there was
nothing forced in op Owen's chuckle, "she's applying the only stimuli...
to us."
Lajos
laughed, brushing his hair back from his forehead as he remembered his frantic
homeward flight. Beneath his arm, he could feel Ruth relaxing. A slight smile
touched her lips.
"Dorotea
will have an unusual opportunity, my dear. One denied you and Lajos, and
myself, and so many other potential Talents. She has the chance to grow up in
her Talent, learning to use it as naturally as she learns to walk and talk. We
will all help her to understand it ... as much as we do ourselves," he
added with a wry smile. "To be candid, Ruth, we are in much the same
position as your daughter. We are all learning to act in a publicly acceptable
fashion with this new facet of human evolution. Psionic Talents are in their
infancy, too, you know.
"You
might even extend the analogy a little to include the Andres Bill, which we
hope will afford all Talents professional status and legal protection. We, in effect,
must prove to the public, our parent-body, if you wish, that we are not 'bad,'
'naughty' or 'capricious' children. Dorotea has already contributed something
to that end,"
and op
Owen caught himself before he explained his own revelation. "Dorotea needs
love and reassurance, discipline and understanding. She'll pick that up from
you, Ruth, with your warmth and sweetness. I want her, possibly more than you
do, to have a normal, happy childhood so that she will be a normal, happy
adult."
He
rose, smiling at the baby's infectious gaiety.
"See,
she knows how pleased we are with her right now, the little rascal."
Op Owen
left, assuring them new quarters within the week. Ruth was so quiet and
thoughtful that Lajos remained home the rest of the day. He found the
revelation of Dorotea's Talent as much a shock as Ruth apparently did. However,
by morning, he was consumed with a paternal pride and, in the succeeding days,
discovered an overweening tendency to maunder on about his daughter's prowess. By
the time they moved to the larger, shielded apartment, he was accustomed to the
notion and, since Dorotea made no more frantic summonses, succeeded in ignoring
it. Until he noticed the gradual change in Ruth. At first, it was no more than
a sudden frown, quickly erased, or a nervous look towards the baby's room if
she slept longer than usual. Then he caught Ruth looking at her child with that
wary expression he had once privately called 'the Freak Look,' which
un-Talented people occasionally directed at him when they discovered his
affiliation with the Center.
"You've
got to stop that, honey," he blurted out. "You've got to keep
thinking . . . strongly . . . that Dorotea is just like other kids. Or you'll
prejudice her. Which is the one thing we have to avoid."
Ruth
vehemently denied the accusation but she turned so white around the lips that
Lajos gathered her quickly into his arms.
"Ah,
sweetie, she hasn't changed just because we've found out she's Talented. But
she is perceptive and she
can sense
your feelings towards her. You start suppressing that 'freak-feeling' right
now. You think positively that she's our beautiful baby girl, sweet and loving,
kind and thoughtful. She'll have that opinion of herself and it won't matter
that she's a strong TP as well. She'll merely consider that part of the whole
bit. It's when she senses criticism and restraint and hypocrisy that we'll be
in trouble. I had to get used to it, too, Ruthie. Say," and he tilted her
chin up and grinned down at her reassuringly, "why don't we get a little
help from op Owen? Talk this over with him. He can put a block on if you need
one." The very suggestion that she couldn't love and understand her own
child made Ruth indignant. She'd had years of parent training. She understood every
phase of early childhood development. She adored Dorotea and she certainly
wouldn't do a thing that might jeopardize her daughter's happiness. They both
felt better after such a candid discussion and the problem was shelved.
"Sir,
I thought you ought to see the Horvath charts," Lester Welch told op Owen.
"A variation keeps appearing in Ruth Horvath's. See?" and Welch
unrolled the paper, pointing here and there to the almost imperceptible
alteration in Ruth's normal pattern. "See, here and here, it's a couple of
microseconds longer and broader. It begins to broaden minutely until it hits
this frame which has remained constant. Now, compare her time-sequence to
Lajos's . . . and remember we're picking up her pattern anywhere in the new
apartment just as we pick up his from the office."
Op Owen
saw the correlation immediately.
"He's
finished no precog in six weeks?"
Welch
contented himself with a nod as op Owen studied the graphs.
"If
I didn't think it was impossible, I'd say Ruth was suppressing him. But
how?"
"Don't
you mean why?"
"That,
too, of course, but 'how' is the bigger question."
"If
you mean the type of pattern, Dave, I can't give you that. There isn't enough
to identify it as a known variation."
"That
wasn't exactly what I meant, although I would like a magnification of this to
study. Can you put on a more sensitive gauge, or a faster needle, to lengthen
the stroke?"
"Hmmm."
Welch considered the suggestion. "I'll rig up something, I guess."
Op Owen
chuckled. "One of the comforting things about you, Les, is your unfailing
rise to the challenge. I don't believe you know what failure is."
Welch
regarded his superior with some surprise. "Failure is an inability to
consider what is not presently known. Like Ruth Horvath's variation?" Then
he added, "Or Senator Zeusman's strategy?"
Op Owen
dismissed that with a wave of his hand and continued to scan the Horvaths'
readings. "Dorotea's first Incident rocked him, didn't it?"
"Yes,
it shows up in his sleep pattern as unusual restlessness the first nights, but
see, he's calming down by the third."
"It's
from that date that his precogs begin to dwindle."
"By
God, you're right. I thought he'd be too stable for a deviation like
that."
"Yes,
he's been too consistent a precog. I think I'll call him in and drop a few
leading questions to see what reaction I get." Op Owen initiated the call
then and there.
"There's
nothing wrong with Dorotea, is there, sir?' Lajos asked as soon as he entered
the office.
"Good
heavens, no," Daffyd op Owen said, gesturing Lajos to a chair.
"It's
about my drop in Incidents, then, isn't it?"
Op Owen
eyed his young colleague for a moment, savoring the peripheral emotions the man
was generating.
It took
no Talent to recognize the defensive nervousness in Lajos's attitude.
"Not
exactly. There are always periods of rest for precogs, caused by any number of
valid reasons, including the absence of fires. However, your graphs show an
onset of Incidents, broken off just as they begin."
"Once
or twice in the office, I've felt as if something was preventing me ..."
"Preventing
you . . ?" Op Owen prompted Lajos gently as he had broken off, startled by
his own phrasing.
"Yes,
sir," Lajos went on slowly, "it's as if something's preventing me
from previewing. Sort of like . . . glancing into a strange room and having the
door slammed in your face."
"Aptly
put. Could you suggest why ... or perhaps what... is preventing you?"
"You
think it's a psychological suppression, don't you?"
"That's
my first thought"
Indignation
and disbelief were Lajos's instant reaction,
"Why
would I want to suppress suddenly?"
"Something
you yourself don't want to see. Precog is not the easiest of Talents,
Lajos," op Owen replied. "Often the precog imposes his own block, as
a relief from the psychological pressures."
"If
you think there's a chance that I'm developing the Cassandra complex . .
." Lajos was heatedly provoked now.
"No,
that follows an entirely different pattern."
"Dorotea's
preventing me?"
"If
this occurred only in your home environment, we'd have to seriously consider
the possibility. But it's improbable for a variety of reasons: the prime one
being that her room is shielded to protect her from overtones of your precogs
as much as to protect us from her blatant calls."
"Ruth?"
Lajos's hushed question had the power of a shout. "She is Talented after
all. But why suppress me? She loves me. I know she does. She's always helped
with
Incidents.
It made her feel a part . . ." Lajos stared at op Owen. Then shook his
head, violently disagreeing with the natural conclusion. "No! I don't see
why suppressing me would... do her any good."
"Has
something else upset her? The suppression starts not long after Dorotea's first
Incident."
Lajos
covered his eyes, groaning deeply. He collected himself almost immediately and,
looking up at op Owen, recounted Ruth's curious uncertainty about Dorotea.
"Yes,
I see now what has possibly happened. She's made you her whipping boy."
"Now
wait a minute, sir. Ruth's not petty or vindictive."
"I'm
not for a moment implying that she is, Lajos. Let us both try to see her
conflicts. She's had to make so many adjustments. She had such hopes when she
entered the training program. I remember her cheerfulness and vivacity so well.
It was difficult to have to disillusion her. You two married and she has
exhibited skill in assisting you. But even the most generous soul experiences
twinges of envy. She looked forward to maternity as an outlet for her natural
inclination and the assuagement of her failures. Suddenly she finds herself
with the extraordinary daughter who makes even the Director of the Center jump
at her whim." Lajos weakly returned op Owen's smile. "I thought at the
tune she was very much distressed at the thought of relinquishing any of
Dorotea's care to our impersonal toils. I don't believe we entirely relieved
her fear that the Center will usurp her role in her daughter's upbringing. Can
you see why she may be indirectly punishing you for circumstances that threaten
her happiness?"
"Yes,
I can." Lajos's admission was dejected.
"Now,
it's not as bad as that," op Owen said firmly. "In fact, stop feeling
guilty and look at the very positive side —Ruth actually has been able to
suppress your strong Talent."
"And
that's positive?"
"Yes.
The underlying problem is Ruth's lack of Talent.
We now
can prove conclusively that she has one. She has demonstrated it superbly.
Severe frustration often breaks down blocks. And she's had that."
"Of
course." Lajos's face began to light up. "Whoa. You said she doesn't
know she's doing it?"
"I've
proof for her. And the further proof will be the renewal of your precogs. I'll
have a talk with her and straighten this out today."
He made
the call as Lajos left. There was more to the problem of Ruth Horvath than
touched the little family. If you don't tell all you know, how much is enough?
op Owen wondered.
"All
right, I'm forced to believe you," Ruth said, her defensiveness waning
under op Owen's gentle redirection, because she also could not deny the
evidence of the graphs: of that remarkable, infinitesimal variation that had to
be an Incident.
Daffyd
op Owen felt himself begin to relax with her admission. He had known it would
be a stormy confrontation: one reason why he had not delayed it. Ruth had been
appalled by the knowledge that she had subconsciously blocked Lajos. She
finally admitted that Dorotea scared her: that she had lost all joy in her
daughter and was terrified of predisposing the child towards her.
"Yes,
I have to believe you," she repeated, not bothering to stifle resentment,
"but it's a pretty poor excuse of a Talent," she added bitterly,
"if all I can do is block my husband's, and not even know I'm doing
that."
"On
the contrary," op Owen replied with a laugh, "it's exactly the one
you need the most . . . applied properly."
Ruth
glared at him, waiting pointedly for an explanation.
"You've
a strong moral code, Ruth. You would not permit yourself to act against your
daughter, though her Talent frightened you. But you will have to waive that
most laudable principle. Until Dorotea has developed suf-
ficient
discretion to handle her mental gift, you are going to have to block it."
Ruth
blinked in surprise and then her eyes brightened, her mouth formed an
"O" of astonishment as she began to understand.
"Of
course. Of course, I understand." Tears of relief welled in her eyes.
"Oh, of course."
Op Owen
smiled at her. "Yes, Dorotea cannot be permitted to dip into any mind she
chooses. You must restrict her by your ability to block. You won't need much
pressure to dissuade her from broadcasting or eavesdropping."
"But
won't Dorotea resent it? I mean, she'll feel me doing it, won't she?"
"All
children require limits. Want them. As long as those limits are consistent and
reasonable, a child as aware as Dorotea of her parents' approval and affection
won't resist. In any event, by the time she could, or would, we shall have been
able to instill discretion and your moral code. Right now, Ruth, you have all
that's required to keep Dorotea from becoming a nuisance and a brat."
Ruth
instantly reacted with indignation to his calculated insult and then laughed as
she recognized the bait. She left his office considerably reassured, once again
at harmony with her situation.
Op Owen
envied her that carefree assurance. He still didn't know what to call what
she'd done. Yes, she had suppressed Lajos's precog over the last six weeks, but
in the four months prior to that Lajos's abilities had increased in strength
and efficiency and, except for duration and width, by a similar application of
psionic effort on Ruth's part. What did her Talent actually affect? And would
it, as he had so blithely assured her, be able to "block" Dorotea?
Well,
if she thinks she can, she will. At least she is no longer afraid of her
precocious child, he thought. He swung his chair round, gazing out at the
peaceful view
of the
grounds of Beechwoods, seeing the city beyond with its spires, towers and
living blocks.
Was I
right in my analogy that Talent is in its infancy, and the public is the
parent? With the duty to block the undisciplined child? The Talents are more
disciplined than the average citizen we often have to search out and rebuke,
protect and cherish. It would be catastrophic for the parent to fear the child.
How much of the whole truth would reassure, as it had Ruth?
Those
who truly understand psionic powers need no explanation. Those who need
explanation will never understand.
Two
mornings later, while reviewing contracts covering institutions holding
government research grants, Lajos experienced one of his strongest Incidents.
So powerful was the flame-fear that it was all he could do to pull the Goosegg recording
web to his skull and depress the key that would relay the reading back to the
Center.
"Flames!"
he said, gasping; his mind reeled with the panoramic intense preview.
"Where?"
he was prompted.
"A
sheet, in front of a huge window, overlooking . . . the grounds. Rhododendrons.
Red ones. The clock in the church tower . . . nearly twelve. Too much heat! The
converter is flawed. It'll blow. There are so many people watching. They don't
belong there." Lajos was abstractedly curious at the sound of indignation
in his voice. "They caused the fire. Meddling. I know him!" Lajos
struggled to get a clear picture of that face.
"You
don't like him. Who is he?"
"Ahhh.
. . the flames. Obscuring everything." Lajos fell back in his chair,
shaken and sweating.
"Can
you make it to the Center? I'll send transport," the duty officer said.
By the
time Lajos reached the computer room in the Center, the system was already
chuckling away at the
details,
locating which laboratories had scheduled visitors in the a.m.: laboratories
using heat converters. The church clock tower suggested a college so that data
was added as well as the planting of red rhododendrons.
Op Owen
greeted Lajos with a grin of approval. "That was the most intense pattern
you've ever projected. Have you any idea why that premonition should affect you
so?"
"None,
sir," Lajos replied, taking the seat op Owen indicated. He was still
shaken.
"The
man you knew: he was someone you obviously dislike. Do you have the impression
that you've met him personally?"
"No.
I recognized his face, that's all. Then the flames leaped up."
"We
don't have much time," and op Owen's eyes glanced towards the wall clock,
registering quarter to eleven. "Your precog came at 10:12. Unfortunately
this appears to be appropriation time and every lab in the country is having
its share of visitations. I want to play back your answer, Lajos. I was struck
by two things and if you can pinpoint them also, we'll have the 'where' at
least."
"Anything."
Lajos could see the vivid overprint of the flames in his mind and tried to see
beyond their obscuring curtain. "And one day, figure out why I have a
pyroaffinity."
"Keeps
insurance rates low, Horvath," Welch said drily as he rewound the tape.
"Don't knock small favors."
Lajos
listened as objectively as he could, appalled at the odd wooden quality of his
voice, the fear when he mentioned the flames.
"I've
got it, sir," he said. "The converter, the lab, the church tower.
Knowing that the people didn't belong there. Wherever it is, is familiar to
me."
"Charlie,"
Welch spoke over his shoulder to the programmer, "add Horvath's place and
travel card."
Almost
immediately a print-out appeared.
"Sir,
it's North East University. Checks out, clock in church tower, visible from
research laboratory which uses a heat converter."
"Any
visitors scheduled today?"
"No
report on that yet, sir, but they do have a government funded research project
in neo-protein and sub-cellular engineering."
"Check
the university direct," Welch said after a nod from op Owen.
"Only
limit it to a request about visitors," op Owen added. "There was
something else I want to check first."
"Excuse
me, sir," Charles broke in as op Owen lifted his desk phone. "Several
parties are expected during the course of the day. Dr. Rizor wishes to speak to
you."
"When
your office puts in a guarded call, Daffyd op Owen, I'm curious. Come
clean."
"Henry,
we are not alarmists ..."
"Precisely.
So... ?"
"We've
had a valid Incident that appears placed at North East. Several of the details
have not coincided, however. We are fallible, you know."
Rizor's
snort was derogatory. "What's the rest of the precog?"
"It
centers around the heat converter in the lab building opposite the church
tower."
"And?
God, it's like pulling nails from you, Dave."
"The
heat converter may be faulty. The precog was that it will blow due to a sudden
hot lab fire, just before noon, while visitors are on the premises."
"I'd
hate for something to happen there now, Dave. We're on the verge of a
breakthrough in the neo-proteins. Running tests that are awfully good. But no
visitors are expected there."
"Then
a variable has already altered the precog."
"That's
too glib a dismissal, Dave. Why would a lab fire stimulate your precog? I
didn't think they usually worked out of their own area."
"Our
precog recognized one of the visitors."
Welch
signaled urgently to op Owen.
"Look,
Dave," Rizor was saying, "I'm taking no chances. I'll have that converter
checked and the building cleared. That'll alter circumstances, too. Besides I
don't want visitors in that building until we complete the program. A
breakthrough will warrant government funding all next year. I appreciate your
calling, Dave. Let me know when I can help again."
Welch
was practically apoplectic before op Owen hung up.
"Washington
sent in an urgent personal precog for Mansfield Zeusman!"
"That's
who I saw," Lajos cried, jumping to his feet.
"Get
Senator Zeusman's office on the phone, Charlie, and don't indicate the
origin," op Owen said.
"Dave,"
and Les Welch had a peculiar expression on his long face, "he's the last
person to warn. One, he won't believe you. Two, he's our principal antagonist.
Let that damned hero perish."
"Les,
you have a dry sense of misplaced humor."
"I'm
practical as all hell, too," Welch added.
"Can
you tell me if Senator Zeusman is expected in the office this morning?"
Charlie's voice carried clearly in the tense silence. "Oh, I see. Can you
tell me where he plans to be in the morning hours? But surely, he left an
itinerary? Thank you." Charlie's voice was wooden and his face
expressionless. "He is not in the office. The assistant is a very rude,
uncouth bumptious twit."
"If
he's not in the office," op Owen said, "he's college hopping—him and
that Research Appropriations Committee of his. He's the sly kind is Zeusman,
loves to arrive unannounced."
"He
could be on his way to North East then," Lajos said.
Op Owen
told Charlie to get Rizor back on the line.
"Sir,"
Charlie reported, concerned, "Dr. Rizor has left his office. Is there a
message?"
Op Owen
picked up an extension phone. "Miss Galt? Daffyd op Owen here. We have
reason to believe that Senator Mansfield Zeusman will pay an unscheduled visit
to your campus before noon. Will you please inform Dr. Rizor immediately? Good.
Thank you. I can be reached at the Center on a priority call basis. Yes, the
situation could be considered critical."
Lajos
felt himself unwind a trifle but his apprehension did not completely abate. He
smiled weakly at op Owen.
"Paradox
time."
"How
so, lad?"
"Dr.
Rizor believes. He is already altering the circumstances I foresaw. We may have
undone ourselves!"
Op
Owen's eyes flashed. "At the risk of Zeusman's life, and that of how many
others you saw in the precog?"
"No,
sir, I didn't mean it that way," Lajos replied, stung by op Owen's scorn.
"I meant, that fire can't happen now because Rizor will prevent Zeusman
from entering the lab."
"I'd
still prefer to see that sparrow fall!" Welch's mutter was clearly
audible.
Op Owen
swung his chair in idle half-arcs but his eyes remained on his dissident
engineer.
"I
am not in the least tempted, gentlemen," he said in his usual easy voice.
"We are not God. Nor are we trying to replace God. The psionic arts are
preventive, not miraculous. We are fallible, and because of that fallibility we
have to be scrupulously impartial, and try to help any man our senses touch,
whoever he may be, whenever we can. Lajos is right. We have already ..."
"Sir,"
Charlie's interruption was apologetic but determined, "two more danger
precogs involving Mansfield Zeusman. One from Delta and one in Quebec. Neither
could get through to Zeusman and are applying to us."
Op Owen
looked as if he might be swearing silently. He glanced up at the clock, its
hands inexorably halfway past eleven.
"We
haven't altered the future enough," Lajos said with a groan.
"Charlie,
alert all rescue teams in the North East area," op Owen said, his words
crisp but calm. "I'll try for Rizor. Les, get Lajos a sedative. Henry, I'm
glad I could reach you..."
"Don't
worry about a thing," Dr. Rizor replied cheerily. "I've a crew
checking the converter and the building is completely off limits. What's this
Miss Galt says about Zeusman paying us an unexpected visit?"
"Evidence
points in that direction, and we've new precogs of danger for him."
"Look,
we're all set here, Dave," Rizor told him in an easy drawl. "No one
can pass the gate without checking through my office and . . . Oh, no!
No!"
The
connection went dead. Op Owen looked around at the others.
"That's
known as locking the barn when the horse is gone," said Welch in a flat
voice. "Lay you two to one and no previewing, Rizor just discovered that
Zeusman uses a heli-jet for these jaunts of his."
"Charlie,
get me through to one of the mobile rescue team trucks."
"Sir,
they're converging on the campus. Only they've been delayed at the gate,"
Charlie said in a quiet sad voice after a moment of urgent cross-wire phoning.
Welch
scratched his head, smoothing his hair back over his ears, trying not to stare
at op Owen's expressionless face. Lajos wondered how the Director could sit so
calmly, but suddenly, not the tranquillizer but an inner natural composure
settled Lajos's tensions.
"Sir,"
he said to op Owen, "I think it came out all right."
Everyone
glanced up at the clock which now ticked over to high noon. The secondhand
moved forward again, and again, the sweep-second duly circumscribing its
segments of time. The phone's buzz startled everyone. Op Owen depressed Receive
and Broadcast.
"I
want to speak to the Director of this so-called Center," a bass voice
demanded authoritatively.
"Op
Owen speaking, Senator Zeusman."
"Well,
didn't expect to get you."
"You
asked to speak to the Director; I am he." Op Owen hadn't switched on his
visual.
The
composed answer appeared to confound the Senator briefly. He had not activated
the screen at his end either.
"You've
outsmarted yourself, Owen, with this morning's exhibition of crystal-balling. I
thought you'd have better sense than to set one up and try to fool me into
believing in your psionic arts bunk." The senator's voice was rich with
ridicule and self-satisfaction. "Heat converter's blowing, indeed! They're
constructed not to blow. Safest, most economical way of heating large
institutional buildings. A scientific way, I might add."
"I
tell you, Senator," Rizor interrupted, "there is a flaw in the bleed-off
of that converter. My engineers reported it."
"Get
off the extension, Rizor. I'll settle your hash later. Applying for funds to
run a research program which you arbitrarily interrupt at a vital stage on the
say-so of crackpots and witch doctors? Your university is unfit to handle any
further public monies over which I have any control," Zeusman was almost
snarling.
"I
won't get off the extension, Zeusman. This is my college, in what is reputedly
still a free country, and I don't regret in any way having listened to Dr. op
Owen. There was a flaw which would have exploded under conditions
foreseen..."
"Don't
defend Owen, Rizor," Zeusman said. "His meddling costs his defenders
too damned much. How's Joel Andres feeling these days, Owen? How's his
amyloidosis progressing? Just remember when you predict his death that the
research your scheme interrupted here might have saved his life."
There
was a loud clack as Zeusman broke the connection.
"Dave?"
Rizor sounded defeated.
"I'm
still here," op Owen replied. "What's this about Joel Andres?"
"You've
had nothing? I thought you always kept a check on important men . . . like
Zeusman." The name was grated out.
"Nothing's
been reported on Joel. Precog is highly unpredictable, as you've just
witnessed."
"That
damned converter was faulty," Rizor was angry now and defiant. "It
would have blown in the next overload. You saved Zeusman—and you've also saved
other people."
"And
Joel? Is it true about his liver?"
"So
I understand," Rizor said in a heavy voice. "And our research was for
a neo-protein to replace the faulty endogenous protein and restore a normal
metabolism. Don't worry. The experiments can be reinitiated."
"With
Zeusman withholding funds?"
"There
are other sources of funds and I intend to use your so-called 'meddling' to
advantage. Damn it, the converter would have blown!" Rizor was muttering
as he ended the call.
Lajos
was utterly spent when he returned to his apartment. Ruth took one look at his
face and fixed him a stiff drink. He took it down, and with a weary smile
flopped onto the bed.
"Dorotea
asleep?" he asked hopefully. He was too disturbed not to generate
emotional imbalance and too tired to suppress it.
"Fast
asleep. Good for a couple of hours, honey," Ruth replied, her strong
fingers already at work on his tense muscles. She did not question his
depression and weariness. Slowly she felt him relax as her massage and the
stiff drink combined to bring surcease.
He woke
in tune for dinner and seemed in control again, laughing at Dorotea's antics,
playing with her on the floor until her bedtime. Only when the baby was
safely
asleep in her shielded room did he tell Ruth all that had happened.
"Oh,
no, not Mr. Andres," she said when he finished. Lajos didn't notice her
quick flush as she recalled her one personal encounter with the magnetic
Senator Andres. He'd been ... so kind to her and she'd been so embarrassed.
"How
could I guess that he'd be involved? It was the flames. And how could I know
that Zeusman would be saved at Andres's expense?"
"Why,
you couldn't, darling," Ruth cried, alarmed at his self-castigation.
"You couldn't! You mustn't blame yourself. You saved lots of lives today!
Lots!"
Lajos
groaned, miserable. "But why, Ruthie . . . why does it have to ricochet
off Andres? If Rizor hadn't ordered the converter off, the experiment would
have been concluded. All they had to do was keep visitors out."
"No,
that's not quite true," Ruth told him in stern contradiction. "You
said yourself that the heat-converter proved to be flawed. That flaw would not
have been discovered without your precog. It would have exploded during the
next lab fire. Who knows who might have been killed then?"
"But
Andres is the one who needed the neo-protein!"
"They'll
come up with a neo-protein somewhere else, then," Ruth said, very
positively to distract Lajos. "They've made so many strides in organ
replacement..."
"Except
livers! That neo-protein was supposed to correct some kind of abnormal protein
growth . . . faulty endogenous protein metabolism . . . that's what's killing
Senator Andres . . . stuff is cramming into his liver and spleen, enlarging
them and there's no known way to clear the amyloids. And when the liver doesn't
work, that's it, honey. Ticket out!"
Ruth
went on stroking Lajos' forehead gently, knowing that he must find his own way
out of this. He burrowed his face into her neck, entreating the comfort that
she never denied him. Later her mind returned to the terrible
paradox,
the tragic linkage of circumstance and the sorrow of the well-intentioned Good
Samaritan.
God
gives man stewardship of his gifts and the free will to use or deny them. Why
must it be, that a man acting in good faith, finds himself reviled?
As
sleep finally claimed her in the early morning hours, she wondered if she ought
now to use her Talent to prevent Lajos from precogs like this. No, she drowsily
realized, she had no right to take negative action. One must always think
positively. One is one's brother's keeper, not his warder!
"I
rather expected a call from you, Dave," Joel Andres said, his grin on the
vidscreen slightly waving from atmospheric disturbance. "And that's no
precog. No indeed," he rattled on, without permitting op Owen to speak.
"The good senator from that great midwestern state called especially to
warn me that I'm the next sparrow to fall because my pet witch doctor read the
wrong crystal ball. Hey, that rhymes. Now, I don't believe that for a moment,
Dave, on account of I don't think that that stupid mock-protein goop would have
been jelled or curdled or what have you, in time to save my misspent life
anyhow." The words were lightly said but there was an edge to Andres's
voice that ruined the jovial effect
"How
long, Joel?"
"Probably
long enough to get that Bill out of Committee, Dave, and I'll count the time
well spent. Zeusman can't put down the mass of evidence in favor of psionics,
the tremendous saving of loss and life already effected by validated precogs.
By the way, Welch told me that the precog came in at 10:12. Do you know the
time when Zeusman gave his pilot orders to fly to North East?"
"10:12?"
"Right,
man. And that's in the record! Right in his flight log and a friend of mine
impounded it because the pilot isn't so contemptuous of the circumstances as
Zeus-
man.
That pilot was scared silly by the coincidence. And don't think I'm not going
to ram that down Zeusman's double-chins."
"He'll
never admit our warning saved his life, Joel," Daffyd said.
"Hell,
he doesn't have to admit it. The facts prove it. But I must say, Dave, you made
one mistake." Joel's chuckle was rich.
"Had
I known what I know now, I do believe that this once I'd've sat back and
twiddled my thumbs."
"Ha!
I don't believe that for a minute . . . no, maybe you would have," and the
lawmaker's voice rippled with amusement. "If this has buckled your
altruistic armor, it's worth it. Worth dying for, because there's nothing
trickier to tie down than an honest man gone bad! Now let me go to work."
"Joel,
let me know ..."
"Hang
loose, man. Don't rob me of my cool. Not now!"
The
senator signed off but Daffyd op Owen sat staring moodily at the wall opposite
his desk, unable for the first time in his life to divert his train of thought.
His mind writhed in recrimination as bitter as an ancient inquisitional
penance.
"Dave?"
Welch's brisk voice broke through his introspection. "There's an anomaly
on ... Oh, I'll come back later...."
"No,
Lester, come in."
Welch
gave his friend a speculative look but he unrolled the graphs without comment.
"Ruth
Horvath!" Op Owen was surprised, almost irritated that she should be the
subject of the intrusion.
"Couple
of things. Here ... on the baby's chart . . . Incident after Incident . . . compare
it with Ruth's. No pattern. Not even an inky hiccup. I thought you said she
could block that baby."
Curious
now, op Owen scanned the charts. "What's this?" he asked, pointing to
a sustained emphatic variation.
"That's
the anomaly. Happened last night. It's a spontaneous variation. All her others
have been triggered, usually by Lajos. And, if you'll look at the peaks and
valleys in last night's records, you'll see that the pattern is kinetic."
"That's
too tight for a true kinetic touch."
"Well,
it's not TP, it's not 'finding' and what'n'hell would she be trying to do, fast
asleep? 'Finding' is a conscious application, anyway. No, this is a kinetic
pattern."
"For
what reason? Against what?"
"Who
knows? The point is, while she has stopped suppressing her husband, she hasn't
started blocking her daughter. And that's going to be serious. I mean, we don't
need a teething telepath broadcasting discomfort."
"Teething?"
"I
forget you're not a parent," Welch said with tolerant condescension,
"to small babies, that is."
Op Owen
was engrossed in the patterns and it was obvious that Ruth was not responding
and seemed unable to use a conscious block. And that was too bad. He frowned at
the unusual kinetic display of the previous night.
"She's
got it. She used it."
"Not
consciously."
"I
hate to resort to therapeutic interference. It might jeopardize her ever using
it consciously."
"It's
therapy for Ruth, or that baby'll tyrannize both parents. And that's bad. A kid
that strong has got to have limits, right now, before she can develop
precocious resistance."
Op Owen
examined the charts one last time, shaking his head as he noticed the
telepathic patterns on Dorotea's chart, saw the impingement on the mother's and
no block.
"These
could be legitimate calls .. ."
"Don't
evade, Dave. I know you hate interfering with Talent; that it should be
spontaneous. Admit Ruth Horvath
is one
of those who cannot use Talent consciously. Meddle a little!"
Op Owen
rose, his face drawn. "I'll drop over to see them today. Let's hope she
responds well to hypnosis,"
"She
does. I looked up her training record."
Two
days later Welch came back in triumph, trailing two sheets of graphing tissue
like victory streamers.
"You
did it, Boss. Look, pass blocked, tune and again, with a minimum of effort on
Ruth's part. But damn it, she's not a pure kinetic. What could she be moving
with such an infinitesimal touch? How does she apply the block?"
"Unconsciously,"
op Owen replied with a sly grin. "However, it may be because that touch is
so delicate, she can't do it consciously. I didn't look very deeply. But so
many kinds of Talent are fairly heavy-handed, violent. Like using awls in place
of microneedles." He winced a little, remembering how his mental touch had
uncovered Ruth's pitiful lack of self-confidence in her Talent. All her
Incidents occurred without her awareness, deep in the subconscious levels of
her mind into which Daffyd saw no need to trespass. She was a nice womanly
person: her surface thoughts revolving around her husband, her daughter: all
her anxieties were needless guilts over minor details. It was, therefore,
relatively easy to block her notions that she would inadvertently harm Dorotea,
or try to suppress Lajos. It was easy to erase conscious knowledge of her
Talent, replacing it with a feeling of accomplishment and well-being: the
post-hypnotic command to respond to Dorotea's telepathic demands and channel
them firmly into speech centers. He also displaced her reluctance to have other
Talented children because she felt inadequate. Ruth must have great resources
of self-assurance. He planted them.
Now op
Owen turned to Welch. "Ask Jerry Frames how soon Ruth Horvath can bear
another child. I'd like her
first
two fairly close together before she gets cold feet." "Cold feet he
calls it!" was Welch's parting crack.
"I'm
sorry, Daffyd," the Washington precog said, "I've stared at Joel
Andres's picture for hours. I've read his House speeches, I've read his
memoirs. I've sat in his outer office until the Senate police asked to have a
word with me. Then he came in, and recognized me, of course. And gave me a
scarf to hold." Mara Helm paused. "As a memento, he said. But I don't
see it."
"You've
had no stimulation about him at all?"
"Nothing
dire."
"What
do you mean, nothing dire?"
"That's
what I mean and all I mean, Dai. Nothing conclusive, in that his life
concludes. And, as you know, my accuracy is unfortunately high."
"I
don't understand this, Mara."
"No
more do I when I hear the gossip around town,"
"Which
is?"
"That
Senator Andres is spending his last moment helping a minority group that not
only has predicted his imminent demise but destroyed his one chance of a
cure." Her voice held no inflection as she uttered these quick sentences,
but her dislike of imparting the gossip was obvious to her listener. Mara
cleared her throat suddenly. "I do have a precog though," she added,
mildly amused.
"A
good one, if I recognize that tone of voice. I could stand some pleasant
tidings."
"I'll
be seeing you shortly," and she laughed mischievously. "In the flesh,
I mean. Here!"
"In
Washington?" Daffyd op Owen was startled. He rarely left the Center and,
at this moment, he had no desire under heaven to set foot in Washington.
Two
weeks later, Daffyd op Owen, in a swivet of anxiety which no perception could
dispel, disembarked from
the
heli-jet on the Senate landing pad. Mara Helm and Joel Andres were waiting for
him. Daffyd had no eyes for anyone but the senator who strode forward, grinning
broadly, eagerly grasping the telepath's hand, forgetting in the excess of his
welcome that Daffyd avoided casual physical contacts.
However,
op Owen wanted more than anything to touch-sense his friend. And was reassured
by the vigorous sensation he felt equally strong through mind and body. He
might disbelieve the evidence of his eyes as he stared at Andres's clear
pupils, the healthy tanned skin with no trace of the yellow, indicative of
liver disorder. Op Owen could not deny the feeling of health and energy that
coursed to him in that hearty handclasp.
"What
happened?" he asked hoarsely.
"Who
knows?" Joel replied. "The medics called it a spontaneous remission.
Said my body had started manufacturing the right enzymes again. Something to do
with a shift in the RNA messenger proteins or some rot like that. Anyhow, no
more amyloids in the perivascular spaces— if that makes any sense to you—the
old liver and spleen are back to normal size and I can feel that. So, friend, I
no longer need that neo-protein research that Zeusman scrapped."
Mara
Helm remained aside, smiling benevolently at the two men, until they finally
remembered her presence.
"Dai,
see?" and she laid a finger fleetingly on his sleeve. "You're here as
predicted!"
"Did
you bring the graphs and records I asked for?" Joel inquired.
"Here
they are," and Daffyd handed the neat package over.
"Good,"
and the senator's expression was maliciously gleeful. "We're going to
hoist Senator Mansfield Zeusman today on his petard. However," and black
anger surged across Andres's face, "I beg your indulgence, Daffyd.
Certain—what would you call them, Mara—security measures?"
Mara's
lips twitched but there was an answering indignant sparkle in her eyes.
"A
shielded cage?" Daffyd asked.
"Yeah,"
and the sound was more of a growl than an affirmative. "Don't think I
didn't protest that insulting..."
"In
fact," Mara said, "he ranted and screamed at the top of his voice.
All Washington heard. I elected to keep you company in the gilt-wired gold-fish
bowl," and she gave op Owen a flirtatious wink.
"You'll
have an advantage over me," Andres said. "You can switch off the
sound of Zeusman's voice."
"Who?
Me?" Daffyd asked and the three entered the Senate Building laughing.
Op Owen
was not surprised at Mansfield Zeusman's insulting treatment. He expected
little else. Although the senator had initiated the investigation of all the
Centers, he had never personally entered one. Obviously Zeus-man was among
those who believed that any telepath could read every mind: he would be
unlikely to believe that telepaths performed their services much as a surgeon
does an exploratory operation in the hope of uncovering a patient's malignant
disease. Zeusman also decried the psychiatric sciences, so his attitude was at
least consistently narrow-minded.
"One
more thing," Andres said as he held open the door into the shielded room,
"you're here at the Committee's request, not Zeusman's, or mine. They may
want to question you. Please, Dave, don't tell all you know?"
"I'll
be a verbal miser, I promise."
"That'll
be our saving," Andres replied. He obviously distrusted op Owen's sudden
meek compliance.
"Doesn't
Joel look wonderful?" whispered Mara as they seated themselves.
"Yes,"
Daffyd replied and then shut his lips. Even that interchange, broadcast into
the chamber beyond, drew
every
eye to them. Op Owen crossed his legs, clasped his hands and composed himself
outwardly.
Zeusman
was not as large a man as op Owen thought he'd be. Nor was he a small man in
stature which might have explained the aggressive, suspicious personality. He
resembled a professor more than a senator, except for the elaborate
gesticulations which were decidedly oratorical. And he was expatiating at
length now with many gestures, pointedly ignoring Andres who took his place at
the conference table.
The
other five members of the Committee nodded towards Andres as if they welcomed
his arrival. Their smiles faded as they turned back to the speaker. It was
apparent to Daffyd that Zeusman's audience was heartily bored with him and had
heard the same arguments frequently.
"These
Experts claim . . ." and Zeusman paused to permit his listeners to absorb
the vitriol he injected into that label, "that even the advertisement of
that precognitive word changes events. Now that's a cowardly evasion of the
consequences of their pernicious meddling."
"We've
been through that argument from stem to stern before, Mansfield," the
lanky bald man with a hawk nose said. Op Owen identified him as Lambert Gould
McNabb, the senior Senator from New England. "You called this
extraordinary session because you claim you have real evidence prejudicial to
this Bill."
Zeusman
glared at McNabb. McNabb calmly tamped down his pipe, relit it, pinched his
nose between thumb and forefinger, blowing against the pressure to relieve his
eardrums, sniffed once or twice, put the pipe back in his mouth and turned an
expectant face towards Zeusman.
"Well,
Mansfield, either hang 'em or cut 'em down."
"I
have your attention, Senator McNabb?"
"At
the moment."
"My
contention has always been that protection for these meddlers is against common
sense, ethics, and all the laws of man and God. They usurp the position of the
Almighty by deciding who's to live and who's to die."
"To
the point, Mansfield," McNabb said.
"Senator
McNabb, will you desist from interrupting me?"
"Senator
Zeusman, I will—if you will desist from jawing."
Zeusman
looked around for support from the other five members of the Committee and
found none.
"On
the 14th of June, I left my offices in this building for the purpose of
visiting several of the universities requesting the renewal of Research Funds.
As you know, it is my custom to arrive unannounced. Therefore, it was not until
we were airborne that I gave my pilot his directions."
"What
time was that?" asked Andres quickly.
"The
time is irrelevant."
"No,
it isn't. I repeat, at what time did you give your pilot his flight directions?"
"I
fail to see what bearing..."
"I have a transcript of the pilot's
log, from the files of the Senate Airwing," Andres said and passed the
copy over to McNabb.
"Ten-twelve,
Daylight Saving time, the record says," McNabb said in a drawl, his eyes
twinkling as he casually flipped the record across the table to the others.
Zeusman
watched, frowning bleakly.
"I
have here," Joel went on before Zeusman could grab the floor,
"authenticated graph readings of four precognitive Incidents: one from
Eastern American Center, the Washington Bureau, Delta Center and Quebec. The
period, allowing for time zones, in which these precogs occurred is between
10:12 and 10:16. Excuse the interruption, Zeusman, but I'm trying to keep
things chronological."
Zeusman
awarded Andres a vicious smile and then a keener look. Op Owen wondered if
Zeusman was only now aware of Andres's improved health.
"Ahem.
When my heli-jet landed at North East University, I and my party were
physically restrained by Dr.
Henry
Rizor, the Research Dean and members of his staff, from conducting our
investigation of their project on the specious grounds that a precog had been
issued, predicting a flaming death for me and my party, due to a faulty heat
converter which was supposed to explode. Well, gentlemen, I fathomed this
little trap immediately."
"Whoa,
whoa, Mansfield," Robert Teague said, tapping the material now in front of
him. "The precog reports I have here ... by God, I'm getting so I don't
need an expert to translate them for me anymore . . . indicate that's exactly
what was to have happened. At ... ah, shortly before noon. When did you arrive
at North East?"
"Quarter
to twelve."
"Then
you'd've been in the building around twelve. I'd say you owed these precogs
your life."
"My
life? Don't be ridiculous!"
"I'm
not. You are," Teague replied with considerable exasperation.
"I'm
no fool, Bob. I know when I'm being had, in spite of all the forged records
going. The whole business was rigged. Heat converters don't blow."
"Right,
so how could one be rigged to blow at precisely twelve noon at North East when
no one, including yourself, knew when or where you were going that morning
until 10:12?"
"A
flaw was discovered when the heat converter was dismantled: air bubble in the
steel tank," Joel Andres said, passing another affidavit to Teague.
"The main chamber has been replaced. It could have blown, through that
air-bubble flaw, under just such circumstances of overload as predicted."
"But
it didn't!" Zeusman said in a roar.
"No,
because it had been turned off to prevent such an occurrence."
"Exactly.
The whole thing was a hoax. Ten-twelve, twelve noon, whatever. And,"
Zeusman rattled the words out so loud and so fast that no one could interrupt
him,
"in
turning off that so-called faulty converter, the experiment then in progress,
paid for by government funds, was ruined just before what was certain to be a
successful conclusion of a highly delicate, valuable project. I've papers of my
own to present"—he dramatically flung stapled sheets to the
table—"despositions from the various qualified, highly trained, highly
reputable scientists in charge of the neo-protein research. And here is where
these .. . these meddling godlets overreach themselves. That neo-protein
research, so rudely interrupted on the brink of success would have produced, by
scientific methods—accurate, repeatable, proven—a substance that would prevent
certain all-too-common and terribly painful deaths due to liver failure. Prevent
an agonizing death facing a certain member of this august Committee. And, if
these precogs are so omniscient, so benign, so altruistic, so wise, why—I ask
you, why, did they not foresee the effects of their own meddling on their
avowed champion?"
Op
Owen's altruism and benignity hit an all-time low and he found himself obsessed
with an intense desire to turn kinetic and clog Zeusman's windpipe permanently.
"Ah
ha," crowed Joel Andres, leaping to his feet, "why should they
foresee my demise, my dear colleague? Due to liver failure? How interesting! Of
course, you have a paper to prove it, Senator, such as my death
certificate?"
"Easy,
Joel," said McNabb, squinting at Andres keenly, "Anyone can see
you're healthy as a hog, though I must admit you had been looking a bit
jaundiced. You look great now, though."
"But
I had a report that he was dying of liver failure," Zeusman said.
"Got
that authenticated?" Teague asked sarcastically.
"Easy,
Bob. We know Mansfield's been doing the job he was elected to do, protect his
constituents and this country. That used to be as easy to do," McNabb
paused to drag on his pipe, "as finding decent substitute tobacco. But
Mansfield proved that was bad for most of us."
"We're
discussing experts, not tobacco," Zeusman reminded him.
"No,
we're discussing progress, on a level some of us find as hard to take as giving
up tobacco. However, it was proved that tobacco was unhealthy. These people
have proved that their Centers protect health and property, and they go about
it scientifically. Everything I've heard today," and McNabb jerked his
pipe stem at Zeusman as the latter started to interrupt, "proves
conclusively to me that you've been putting the wrong eggs in the right basket.
That precog was for your health and well-being, Mansfield, which these people
are pledged to protect: you didn't have to take the warning..."
"I
was forced..."
"Lots
of us were forced to stop smoking, too," McNabb said, grinning. "This
artificial stuff still doesn't taste right but I know it's better for me.
"Most
important of all, Mansfield, and it seems to have completely escaped your
logical, scientific, one-track mind, is the very fact that these people warned
you! Whether they knew the consequences to Joel Andres or not if they also
stopped the experiment, they had to warn you and your party! So stop your
maundering on about their ethics and meddling. I'd've let you burn!"
Zeusman
sank down into a chair, blinking at McNabb's craggy face. Then the New England
senator rose, a slight smile on bis lips.
"Gentlemen,
we've hassled this Bill back and forth for close to two years. We've satisfied
ourselves the provisions protecting the parapsychic professions, as outlined in
Articles IV and V, do not threaten the safety of the citizens of this country,
do not jeopardize personal liberty, et cetera and all that, and, hell, let's
place it on the agenda and start protecting these poor idealistic bastards from
... from them as don't wish to be protected."
McNabb's
grin was pure malice but he didn't glance in Zeusman's direction nor was the
midwesterner aware of anything but this unexpected defeat.
Op Owen
reached the Center after full dark of the late spring evening. The pleasant
sense of victory still enveloped him in contentment. He found himself, however,
turning toward the apartments rather than his own quarters. The news that the
Andres Bill had left Committee and would be presented to the Senate next
session had already been relayed to the Center. He heard echoes of the celebrating
which appeared to be going on all over the grounds.
A
little premature, he thought to himself, for the Bill must pass Senate and
Congress. There would be sharp debate" but they predicted it would pass.
The President was already in favor of protection for the Talented since he
benefited from their guardianship.
Op Owen
entered the building where the Horvaths lived. He hesitated at the elevator,
then made for the steps, pleased to arrive without breathlessness at their
apartment door.
He had
a split second of concern that he might be interrupting the young couple but it
was quickly dispelled when Lajos, still dressed, flung the door wide.
"Mr.
op Owen!" The precog's face was a study in incredulous amazement.
"Good evening, sir!"
"I'm
sorry. Were you expecting someone?"
"No,
no one. Exactly. Please, come in. It's just.. . well, everyone's been apartment
hopping since the news came..."
"The
Director is immune to jubilation?"
Lajos
was spared the necessity of answering because Ruth entered from the kitchen,
her face lighting up as she rushed forward to greet their guest. Op Owen was
relieved at her obvious welcome: she could have developed a subconscious
antipathy for him after their recent session.
"I
don't think anyone expected you back tonight, sir," Lajos was saying,
pressing a drink on op Owen.
"We're
all so proud of you, sir," Ruth added shyly.
"I
did nothing," op Owen replied. "I sat in a shielded room and
listened. It was Lajos's precog..."
"There
were three other reports, sir," Lajos said, "but is it really
confirmed that Senator Andres has had a remission of that liver ailment?"
"Yes,
absolutely, demonstrably true. I know we've all felt burdened with a certain .
. . regret, on that aspect of the North East Incident. It is the inevitable
concomitant of the precognitive gift."
"And
Dr. Rizor's grant will be restored?"
Op Owen
was taken by surprise. "I'm embarrassed to say I didn't think to
inquire." He felt himself coloring.
"We
can't think of everything, can we?" Ruth asked, her lips twitching with a
mischievous smile.
Op Owen
burst out laughing and, after a startled pause, Lajos joined him.
"I'll
bet it will be restored," Ruth went on, "and that's no precog: just
plain justice."
"How's
Dorotea?" op Owen asked.
"She's
asleep," and there was nothing but pride and pleasure in Ruth's face as
she glanced towards the closed nursery door. "It's fascinating to listen
to her figuring out how to get out from under the table."
Lajos
echoed her pleasure. Op Owen rose, suddenly conscious of the rippling
undercurrent between the two young people. His presence constituted a crowd.
"I
wanted you to know about Joel Andres, Lajos."
"Thank
you sir, I do appreciate it."
"It
was good of you to tell us. You must be so tired," Ruth said, linking arms
with her husband and standing very close to him.
"Save
your maternal instincts for your children, Ruth," he said kindly and left.
Once
again in the soft night air, op Owen felt extremely pleased with life. Obeying
an impulse, he glanced over his shoulder and noticed that the lights in the
Horvath apartment were already out. He had interrupted them after
all.
Sometimes, shield as he could, the stronger emotions, sex being one of them,
seeped through.
He took
his time walking back through the grounds, permitting himself the rare luxury
of savoring the happy aura that permeated the Center. He stored up the
fragrance of the joyful night, the exuberance that penetrated the dark, the
hopefulness that softened the chill of the breeze, against those desperate
hours that are the commoner lot of man. These times of harmony, concert,
attunement came all too seldom for the Talented. They were rare, glorious,
treasured.
Habit
made him stop in at the huge control room. Surprise prompted him to enter—for
Lester Welch, a dressing robe thrown over his nightclothes and a drink in one
hand, was bending over the remote graph panels. His attitude, as well as that
of the duty officer, was of intense concentration.
"Never
seen anything like that before in a coital graph," Welch was muttering
under his breath.
"Turned
graphic voyeur, Lester?" Daffyd asked with tolerant amusement.
"Voyeur,
hell. Take a look at these graphs. Ruth Horvath's doing it again. And at a time
like this? Why?"
Welch
was scarcely a prurient man. Stifling his own dislike of such an unwarranted
invasion of privacy, op Owen glanced at the two graphs, needles reacting wildly
in response to the sexual stimuli mutually enjoyed. Lajos's graph showed the
normal agitated pattern: Ruth's matched his except for the frenetic action of
the needle, trying valiantly to record the cerebrally excited and conflicting
signals its sensitive transistors picked up. The needle gouged deep into the
fragile paper, flinging its tip back and forth. Yet the pattern of deviation
emerged throughout the final high—a tight, intense, obviously kinetic pattern.
Abruptly
the frantic activity ceased, the lines wandered slowly back to normal-fatigue
patterns.
"That
was most incredible. The most prodigious performance I have ever
witnessed."
Op Owen
shot Welch a stern glance, only to realize that the man meant the electronic
record. He was momentarily embarrassed at his own thoughts.
"What
does she do?" Welch continued speaking and the technician glanced up
quickly, startled and flushing. "The kinetic energy is expended for what
reason? Not that she'd be able to tell us anyhow."
"For
what reason?" op Owen asked quietly, answering the safest question.
"For the exercise of a very womanly talent." He waited, then sighed
at their obtuseness. "What is the fundamental purpose of intercourse
between members of the opposite sex?"
"Huh?"
It was Welch's turn to be shocked.
"The
propagation of their species," op Owen answered his own inquiry.
"You
mean . . . you can't mean . . ." Welch sank, stunned, into a chair as he
began to comprehend.
"It
hadn't occurred to me before now," op Owen went on conversationally,
"that it is rather odd that a brown-eyed, black-haired father and a
grey-eyed, brown haired mother could produce a blue-eyed blonde. Not
impossible. Just quite improbable. Now Lajos is precog, and we have to grant
that Ruth is kinetic. So how do these genes produce a strong, strong
telepath?"
"What
did she do?" Welch asked softly. His eyes knew the answer but he had to
hear op Owen voice it.
"She
rearranged the protein components of the chromosome pairs which serve as gene
locks and took the blue-eyed genes and the blonde-haired ones out of cell
storage. And what ever else she wanted to create Dorotea. That would be my
educated guess. Just the way she unlocked the RNA messengers for . . ." Op
Owen hesitated: no, not even Lester Welch needed to know that bit of Ruth's
tinkering—"whatever it is she has in mind for this child." Welch had
not apparently noticed his hesitation. "It'll be interesting to see the
end product."
Welch
was speechless and the technician pretended great industry at another panel. Op
Owen smiled gently.
"This
is classified, gentlemen. I'll want those records removed as soon as you can
break into the drums," he told the technician, who managed to respond
coherently.
"I'm
glad of that," Welch said with open relief. "I'm glad that you're not
blabbing all this to the world. Are you going to tell Lajos?"
"No,"
Daffyd replied with deliberation. "He obviously intends to cooperate. And
they'll be happier parents without that knowledge."
Welch
snorted, himself again.
"You
sound like you're getting common sense, Dave. Thank God for that." He
frowned as the drum wound the last of that Incident out of sight. "She can
actually unlock the genes!" He whistled softly.
"
'One science only will one genius fit. So vast is art, so narrow human wit!'
"
"How's
that again, Dave?"
"A
snitch of Popery!" op Owen remarked as he left.
Apple
The
theft was the lead morning 'cast and ruined Daffyd op Owen's appetite. As he
listened to the description of the priceless sable coat, the sapphire necklace,
the couture model gown and the jewel-strap slippers, he felt as if he were
congealing to his chair as his breakfast cooled and hardened on the plate. He
waited, numbed, for the commentator to make the obvious conclusion: a
conclusion which would destroy all that the East American Para-psychic Center
had achieved so slowly, so delicately. For the only way in which such valuable
items could have been removed from a store dummy in a scanned, warded, very
public display window in the five-minute period between the fixed TV frames was
by kinetic energy.
"The
police have several leads and expect to have a solution by evening.
Commissioner Frank Gillings is taking charge of the investigation.
"
'I keep my contractual obligations to the City,' Gillings is reported to have
told the press early this morning as he personally supervised the examination
of the display window at Coles, Michaels and Charny Department Store. 'I have
reduced street and consensual crimes and contained riot activity. Jerhattan is
a safe place for the law-abiding. Unsafe for law-breakers.'"
The
back-shot of Gillings's stern face was sufficient to break op Owen's stasis. He
rose and strode toward the comunit just as it beeped.
"Daffyd,
you heard that 'cast?" The long, unusually grim face of Lester Welch
appeared on the screen. "God-
dammit,
they promised no premature announcement. Mediamen!" His expression boded
ill for the first unwary reporter to approach him. Over Les's shoulder, op Owen
could see the equally savage face of Charlie Moorfield, duty officer of the control
room of the Center.
"How
long have you known about the theft?" Op Owen couldn't quite keep the
reprimand from his voice. Les had a devoted habit of trying to spare his
superior, particularly these days when he knew op Owen had been spreading
himself very thin in the intensive public educational campaign.
"Ted
Lewis snuck in a cautious advice as soon as Headquarters scanned the
disappearance. He also can't 'find' a thing. And, Dave, there wasn't a wrinkle
or a peak between 7:03 and 7:08 on any graph that shouldn't be there, with
every single Talent accounted for!"
"That's
right, Boss," Charlie added. "Not a single Incident to account for
the kinetic 'lift' needed for the heist."
"Gillings
is on his way here," said Les, screwing his face up with indignation.
"Why?"
Daffyd op Owen exploded. "Didn't Ted clear us?"
"Christ,
yes, but Gillings has been at Cole's and his initial investigation proves
conclusively to him that one of our people is a larcenist. One of our women, to
be precise, with a secret yen for sable, silk and sapphires."
Daffyd
forced himself to nullify the boiling anger he felt. He could not afford to
cloud reason with emotion. Not with so much at stake. Not with the Bill which
would provide legal protection for Talents only two weeks away from passing.
"You'll
never believe me, will you, Dave," Les said, "that the Talented will
always be suspect?"
"Gillings
has never caviled at the use of Talents, Lester."
"He'd
be a goddamned fool if he did." Lester's eyes sparkled angrily. He jabbed
at his chest. "We've kept street and consensual crime low. Talent did his
job for him. And
now
he's out to nail us. With publicity like this, we'll never get that Bill
through. Christ, what luck! Two bloody weeks away from protection."
"If
there's no Incident on the graphs, Les, even Gillings must admit to our
innocence."
Welch
rolled his eyes heavenwards. "How can you be so naive, Dave? No matter
what our remotes prove, that heist was done by a Talent."
"Not
one of ours." Daffyd op Owen could be didactic, too.
"Great.
Prove it to Gillings. He's on his way here now and he's out to get us. We've
all but ruined his spotless record of enforcement and protection. That hits his
credit, monetary and personal." Lester paused for a quick breath. "I
told you that public education program would cause more trouble than it's
worth. Let me cancel the morning 'cast."
"No."
Daffyd closed his eyes wearily. He didn't need to resume that battle with Les
now. In spite of this disastrous development, he was convinced of the necessity
for the campaign. The general public must learn that they had nothing to fear
from those gifted with a parapsychic Talent. The series of public information
programs, so carefully planned, served several vital purposes: to show how the
many facets of Talent served the community's best interests; to identify those
peculiar traits that indicated the possession of a Talent; and most important,
to gain public support for the Bill in the Senate which would give Talents
professional immunity in the exercise of their various duties.
"I
haven't a vestige of Talent, Dave," Les went on urgently, "but I
don't need it to guess some dissident in the common mass of have-nots listened
to every word of those 'casts and put what you should never have aired to good
use ... for him. And don't comfort me with how many happy clods have obediently
tripped up to the Clinic to have their minor Talents identified. One renegade
apple's all you need to sour the barrel!"
"Switch
the 'cast to the standard recruiting tape. To pull the whole series would be
worse. I'm coming right over."
Daffyd
op Owen looked down at the blank screen for a long moment, gathering strength.
It was no precog that this would be a very difficult day. Strange, he mused,
that no precog had foreseen this. No. That very omission indicated a wild
Talent, acting on the spur of impulse. What was it Les had said? "The
common mass of have-nots?" Even with the basic dignities of food, shelter,
clothing and education guaranteed, the appetite of the have-not was continually
whetted by the abundance that was not his. In this case, hers. Daffyd op Owen
groaned. If only such a Talent had been moved to come to the Center where she
could be trained and used. Where had their so carefully worded programming
slipped up? She could have had the furs, the jewels, the dresses on overt
purchase . . . and enjoyed them openly. The Center was well enough endowed to
satisfy any material yearning of its members. Surely Gillings would admit that.
Op Owen
took a deep breath and exhaled regret and supposition. He must keep his mind
clear, his sensitivities honed for any nuance that would point a direction
toward success.
As he
left his shielded quarters at the back of the Center's extensive grounds, he
was instantly aware of tension in the atmosphere. Most Talented persons
preferred to live in the Center, in the specially shielded buildings that
reduced the 'noise' of constant psychic agitation. The Center preferred to have
them here, as much to protect as to help their members. Talent was a
double-edged sword; it could incise evil but it neatly separated its wielder
from his fellow man. That was why these broadcasts were so vital. To prove to
the general public that the psychically gifted were by no means supermen.
Research had indicated there were more people with the ability than would admit
it. There were, however, definite limitations to most Talents.
The
Parapsychic had been raised, in Daffyd's lifetime, to the level of a science
with the development of the Goosegg, ultra-sensitive electroencephalographs
which could record, and identify the type of "Talent" by the minute
electrical impulses generated in the cortex by the application of psychic
powers. Daffyd op Owen sometimes thought the word "power" was the
villain in perpetuating the public misconceptions. Power means "possession
of control" but such synonyms as "domination," "sway,"
"command" leapt readily to the average mind and distorted the actual
definition.
Daffyd
op Owen was roused from his thoughts by the heavy beat of a copter. He turned
onto the path leading directly to the main administration building and had a
clear view of the Commissioner's marked copter landing on the flight roof, to
the left of the control tower with its forest of antennal decorations.
Immediately
he perceived a reaction of surprise, indignation and anxiety. Surely every
Talent who'd heard the news on the morning 'cast and realized its significance
could not be surprised by Gillings's arrival. Op Owen quickened his pace.
"Orley's
loose!" The thought was as loud as a shout.
People
paused, turned unerringly towards the long low building of the Clinic where
applicants were tested for sensitivity and trained to understand and use what
Talent they possessed: and where the Center conducted its basic research in
psionics.
A tall,
heavy figure flung itself from the Clinic's broad entrance, charged down the
lawn, in a direct line to the tower. The man leaped the ornamental garden,
plunged through the hedges, swung over the hood of a parked lawn-truck,
straight-armed the overhanging branches of trees, and brushed aside several men
who tried to stop him.
"Project
reassurance! Project reassurance!" the bullhorn from the tower advised.
"Project happiness!"
"Get
those cops in my office!" Daffyd projected on his
own as
he began to run towards the building. He hoped that Charlie Moorfield or Lester
had already done so. Orley didn't look as if anything short of a tranquillizer
bullet would stop him. Who had been dim-witted enough to let the telempath out
of his shielded room at a time like this? The moron was the most sensitive
barometer to emotion Daffyd had ever encountered and he was physically
dangerous if aroused. By the speed of that berserker-charge, he had soaked up
enough fear/anxiety/anger to dismember the objects he was homing in on.
The
only sounds now in the grounds were those of op Owen's shoes hitting the
permaplast of the walk and the thud-thud of Orley's progress on the thick lawn.
One advantage of being Talented is efficient communication and total
comprehension of terse orders. But the wave of serenity/reassurance was not
penetrating Orley's blind fury: the openness dissipated its effect.
Three
men walked purposefully out of the administration building and down the broad
apron of steps. Each carried slim-barreled hand weapons. The man on the left
raised and aimed his at the audibly-panting, fast approaching moron. The shot
took Orley in the right arm but did not cause him to falter. Instantly the
second man aimed and fired. Orley lost stride for two paces as the shot
penetrated his thigh but incredibly he recovered. The third man—op Owen
recognized Charlie Moorfield—waited calmly as Orley rapidly closed the
intervening distance. In a few more steps Orley would crash into him. Charlie
was swinging out of the way, his gun slightly raised for a chest shot, when the
moron staggered and, with a horrible groan, fell to his knees. He tried to
rise, one clenched fist straining towards the building.
Instantly
Charlie moved to prevent Orley from gouging his face on the coarse-textured
permaplast.
"He
took two double-strength doses, Dave," Moorfield exclaimed with some awe
as he cradled the moron's head in his arms.
"He
would. How'n'hell did he get such an exposure?
-
Charlie made a grimace. "Sally was feeding him on the terrace. She hadn't
heard the news 'cast. Said she was concentrating on keeping him clean and
didn't 'read' his growing restlessness as more than response to her until he
burst wide open."
"Too
much to hope that our unexpected guests didn't see this?"
Charlie
gave a sour grin. "They caused it, Boss. Stood there on the roof, giving
Les a hard time, broadcasting basic hate and distrust. You should've seen the
dial on the psychic atmosphere gauge. No wonder Orley responded,"
Charlie's face softened as he glanced down at the unconscious man. "Poor
damned soul. Where is that med-team? I 'called' them when he got outside."
Daffyd
glanced up at the broad third floor windows that marked his office. Six men
stared back. He put an instant damper on his thoughts and emotions, and mounted
the steps.
The
visitors were still at the window, watching the med-team as. they lifted the
huge limp body onto the stretcher.
"Orley
acts as a human barometer, gentlemen, reacting instantly to the emotional aura
around him," Les was saying in his driest, down-east tone. To op Owen's
wide-open mind, he emanated a raging anger that almost masked the aura
projected by the visitors. "He has an intelligence factor of less than 50
on the New Scale which makes him uneducable. He is, however, invaluable in
helping identify the dominating emotion of seriously disturbed mental and
hallucinogenic patients which could overcome a rational telepath."
Police
Commissioner Frank Gillings was the prime
source
of the fury which had set Harold Orley off. Op
Owen
felt sorry for Orley, having to bear such anger, and
sorrier
for himself and his optimistic hopes. He was mo-
mentarily
at a loss to explain such a violent reaction from
Gillings,
even granting the validity of Lester Welch's assumption that Gillings was
losing face, financial and personal, on account of this affair.
He
tried a "push" at Gillings's mind to discover the covert reasons and
found the man had a tight natural shield, not uncommon for a person in high
position, privy to sensitive facts. The burly Commissioner gave every outward
appearance of being completely at ease, as if this were no more than a routine
visit, and not one hint of his surface thoughts leaked. Deep-set eyes, barely
visible under heavy brows, above fleshy cheeks in a swarthy face that missed
nothing, flicked from Daffyd to Lester and back.
Op Owen
nodded to Ted Lewis, the top police "finder" who had accompanied the
official group. He stood a little to one side of the others. Of all the
visitors, his mind was wide open. Foremost was the thought that he hoped Daffyd
would read him, so that he could pass the warning that Gillings considered
Orley's exhibition another indication that Talents could not control or
discipline their own members.
"Good
morning, Commissioner. I regret such circumstances bring you on your first
visit to the Center." This morning's newscast has made us all extremely
anxious to clear our profession."
Gillings's
perfunctory smile did not acknowledge the tacit explanation of Orley's
behavior.
"I'll
come to the point, then, Owen. We have conclusively ascertained that there was
no break in store security measures when the theft occurred. The 'lectric wards
and spy-scanner were not tampered with nor was there any evidence of breaking
or entering. There is only one method in which sable, necklace, dress and shoes
could have been taken from that window in the five minutes between TV scans.
"We
regret exceedingly that the evidence points to a person with psychic talents.
We must insist that the larcenist be surrendered to us immediately and the
merchandise re-
turned
to Mr. Grey, the representative from Cole's." He indicated the portly man
in a conservative but expensive grey fitted.
Op Owen
nodded and looked expectantly towards Ted Lewis.
"Lewis
can't 'find' a trace anywhere so it's obvious the items are being
shielded." A suggestion of impatience crept into Gillings's bass voice.
"These grounds are shielded."
"The
stolen goods are not here, Commissioner. If they were, they would have been
found by a member the instant the broadcast was heard."
Gillings's
eyes snapped and his lips thinned with obstinacy.
"I've
told you I can read on these grounds, Commissioner," Ted Lewis said with
understandable indignation. "The stolen..."
A wave
of the Commissioner's hand cut off the rest of Lewis's statement. Op Owen
fought anger at the insult.
"You're
a damned fool, Gillings," said Welch, not bothering to control his,
"if you think we'd shelter a larcenist at this time."
"Ah
yes, that Bill pending Senate approval," Gillings said with an unpleasant
smile.
Daffyd
found it hard to nullify resentment at the smug satisfaction and new antagonism
which Gillings was generating.
"Yes,
that Bill, Commissioner," op Owen repeated, "which will protect any
Talent registered with a para-psychic center." Op Owen did not miss-the
sparkle of Gillings's deep-set eyes at the deliberate emphasis. "If you'll
step this way, gentlemen, to our remote-graph control system, I believe that we
can prove, to your absolute satisfaction, that no registered Talent is
responsible. You haven't been here before, Commissioner, so you are not familiar
with our method of recording incidents in which psychic powers are used.
"Power,
by the way, means "possession of control', personal as well as psychic,
which is what this Center teaches
each
and every member. Here we are. Charles Moorfield is the duty officer and was in
charge at the time of the robbery. If you will observe the graphs, you'll
notice that that period—between 7:03 and 7:08 was the time give by the
'cast—has not yet wound out of sight on the storage drums."
Gillings
was not looking at the graphs. He was staring at Charlie.
"Next
time, aim at the chest first, mister."
"Sorry
I stopped him at all... mister," replied Charlie, with such deliberate
malice that Gillings colored and stepped towards him.
Op Owen
quickly intervened. "You dislike, distrust and hate us,
Commissioner," he said, keeping his own voice neutral with effort.
"You and your staff has prejudged us guilty, though you are at this moment
surrounded by incontrovertible evidence of our collective innocence. You arrived
here, emanating disruptive emotions—no, I'm not reading your minds,
gentlemen." Daffyd had all Gillings's attention with that phrase.
"That isn't necessary. You're triggering responses in the most controlled
of us—not to mention that poor witless telempath we had to tranquillize. And,
unless you put a lid on your unwarranted hatred and fears, I will have no
compunction about pumping you all full of tranks, too!"
"That's
coming on mighty strong for a man in your position, Owen," Gillings said
in a tight hard voice, his body visibly tense now.
"You're
the one that's coming on strong, Gillings. Look at that dial behind you."
Gillings
did not want to turn, particularly not at op Owen's command, but there is a
quality of righteous anger that compels obedience.
"That
registers—as Harold Orley does—the psychic intensity of the atmosphere. The
mind gives off electrical impulses, Gillings, surely you have to admit that.
Law enforcement agencies used that premise for lie detection. Our
instrumentation makes those early registers as
archaic
as space ships make oxcarts. We have ultra-delicate equipment which can measure
the minutest electrical impulses of varying frequencies and duration. And this
PA dial registers a dangerous high right now. Surely your eyes must accept
scientific evidence.
"Those
rows of panels there record the psychic activity of each and every member
registered with this Center. See, most of them register agitation right now.
These red divisions indicate a sixty-minute time span. Each of those drums
exposes the graph as of the time of that theft. Notice the difference. Not one
graph shows the kinetic activity required of a 'lifter' to achieve such a
theft. But every one shows a reaction to your presence.
"There
is no way in which a registered Talent can avoid these graphs. Charlie, were
any kinetics out of touch at the time of the theft?"
Charlie,
his eyes locked on Gillings, shook his head slow-
ly.
"There
never has been so much as a civil misdemeanor by any of our people. No breach
of confidence, nor integrity. No crime could be shielded from fellow Talents.
"And
can you rationally believe that we would jeopardize years and years of struggle
to become accepted as reliable citizens of indisputable integrity for the sake
of a fur coat and a string of baubles? When there are funds available to any
Talent who might want to own such fripperies?" Op Owen's scorn made the
Cole man wince.
"Now
get out of here, Gillings. Discipline your emotions and revise your snap
conclusion. Then call through normal channels and request our cooperation.
Because, believe me, we are far more determined . . . and better equipped . . .
to discover the real criminal than you could ever be, no matter what your
personal stake in assigning guilt might conceivably be."
Op Owen
watched for a reaction to that remark but Gillings, his lips thin and white
with anger, did not betray himself. He gestured jerkily towards the one man in
police blues.
"Do
not serve that warrant now, Gillings!" op Owen said in a very soft voice.
He watched the frantic activity of the needle on the PA dial.
"Go.
Now. Call. Because if you cannot contain your feelings, Commissioner, you had
better maintain your distance."
It was
then that Gillings became aware of the palpable presence of those assembled in
the corridor. A wide aisle had been left free, an aisle that led only to the
open elevator. No one spoke or moved or coughed. The force exerted was not
audible nor physical. It was, however, undeniably unanimous. It prevailed in
forty-four seconds.
"My
firm will wish to know what steps are being taken," the Cole's man said in
a squeaky voice as he began to walk, with erratic but ever quickening steps,
towards the elevator.
Gillings's
three subordinates were not so independent, but there was no doubt of their
relief as Gillings turned and walked with precise, unhurried strides to the
waiting car.
No one
moved until the thwapping rumble of the copter was no longer audible. Then they
turned for assignments from their director.
City
Manager Julian Pennstrak, with a metropolis of some four million to supervise,
had a habit of checking up personally on any disruption to the smooth operation
of his city. He arrived as the last of the organized search parties left the
Center.
"I'd
give my left kidney and a million credits to have enough Talent to judge a man
accurately, Dave," he said as he crossed the room. He knew better than to
shake hands unless a Talented offered but it was obvious to Daffyd, who liked
Pennstrak, that the man wanted somehow to convey his personal distress over
this incident. He stood for a moment by the chair, his handsome face
without
a trace of his famous genial smile. "I'd've sworn Frank Gillings was
pro-Talent," he said, combing his fingers through his thick, wavy black
hair, another indication of his anxiety. "He certainly has used your
people to their fullest capabilities since he became LEO Commissioner."
Lester
Welch snorted, looking up from the map he was annotating with search patterns.
"A man'll use any tool that works .. . until it scratches him, that
is."
"But
you could prove that no registered Talent was responsible for that theft."
"
'A man convinced "against his will, is of his own opinion still,' "
Lester chanted.
"Les!"
Op Owen didn't need sour cynicism from any quarter, even one dedicated to
Talent. "No registered Talent was responsible."
Pennstrak
brightened. "You did persuade Gillings that it's the work of an
undiscovered Talent?"
Welch
made a rude noise. "He'll be persuaded when we produce both missing person
and missing merchandise. Nothing else is going to satisfy either Gillings or
Cole's."
"True,"
Pennstrak agreed, frowning thoughtfully. "Nor the vacillating members of
my own Council. Oh, I know, it's a flash reaction but the timing is so
goddamned lousy, Dave. Your campaign bore down heavy on the Integrity and good
citizenship of the Talented."
"It's
a deliberate smear job ..." Welch began gloomily.
"I
thought of that," Pennstrak interrupted him, "and had my own expert
go over the scanner films. You know the high security risk set-up: rotating
exposures on the stationary TV eyes. One frame the model was clothed; next,
exposed in all its plastic glory. It was a 'lift' all right. No possibility of
tampering with that film." Pennstrak leaned forward to Dave, though there
was scarcely any need to guard his statements in this company.
"Furthermore, Pat came along. She 'read' everyone at the store, and
Gillings's squad. Not Gillings, though. She said he has
a
natural shield. The others were all clean ... at least of conspiracy."
Pennstrak's snide grin faded quickly. "I made her go rest. That's why
there's no one with me."
Op Owen
accepted the information quietly. He had half-hoped ... it was an uncharacteristic
speculation for him. However, it did save time and Talent to have had both
store and police checked.
It had
become general practice to have a strong telepathic receiver in the entourage
of any prominent or controversial public figure. That Talent was rarely
identified publicly. He or she usually performed some obvious service so that
their constant presence was easily explicable. Pat Tawfik was overtly
Pennstrak's chief speech writer.
"I
have, however," Pennstrak continued, "used my official prerogative to
supervise the hunt. There're enough sympathetic people on the public media
channels to play down the Talent angle—at my request—but you know what this
kind of adverse publicity is going to do to you, this Center and the Talented
in general. One renegade can discredit a hundred honest injuns. So, what can I
do to help?"
"I
wish I knew. We've got every available perceptive out on the off-chance that
this—ah—renegade happens to be broadcasting joy and elation over her
heist."
"Her?"
"The
concensus is that while a man might lift furs and jewels, possibly the dress,
only a woman would take the shoes, too. Top finders are coming in from other
Centers ..."
"A
'find' is reported, Boss," said Charlie over the intercom. "Block
Q."
As
Pennstrak and op Owen reached the map, Welch announced with a groan.
"Gawd, that's a multi-layer apartment zone."
"A
have-not," added op Owen.
"Gil
Gracie made the find, Boss," Charlie continued. "And the fur is not
all he's found but he's got a problem."
"You
just bet he has," Les said under his breath as he grimaced down at the map
coordinates.
"Charlie,
send every finder and perceptive to Block Q. If they can come up with a fix
..."
"Boss,
we got a fix, but there's one helluva lot of similarities."
"What's
the problem?" asked Pennstrak.
"We'll
simply have to take our time and eliminate, Charlie. Send anyone who can
help." Then op Owen turned to Pennstrak. "In reporting a 'find,' the
perceptive is aware of certain particular spatial relationships between the
object sought and its immediate surroundings. It isn't as if he has seen the
object as a camera sees it. For example, have you ever entered a room, turned
down a street, or looked up quickly and had the feeling that you had seen just
(and Daffyd made a bracket of his hands) that portion of the scene before, with
exactly the same lighting, exactly the same components? But only that portion
of the scene, so that the rest was an indistinguishable blur?"
Pennstrak
nodded.
"
'Finding' is like that. Sometimes the Talent sees it in lucid detail, sometimes
it's obscured or, as in this case, there are literally hundreds of
possibilities . . . apartments with the same light exposure, same scene out the
window, the same floor plan and furnishings. Quite possible in this instance
since these are furnished, standard subsistence dwellings. Nothing to help us
single out, say Apartment 44E, Building 18, Buhler Street."
"There
happens to be a Building 18 on Buhler Street, Boss," Les Welch said
slowly, "and there are 48 levels, 10 units per floor."
Pennstrak
regarded op Owen with awe.
"Nonsense,
this office is thoroughly shielded and I'm not a precog!"
"Before
you guys took the guesswork out of it, there were such things as hunches,"
Pennstrak suggested.
For op
Owen's peace of mind and Lester's pose of
misogyny,
it was neither Building 18 nor Buhler Street nor Apartment 44. It was Apartment
1E, deep in the center of Q Block. No one had entered nor left it—by normal
means—since Gil Gracie and two other finders had made a precise fix. Gil handed
op Owen the master key obtained from the dithering super.
"My
Gawd," Pennstrak said in a voice muted with shocked surprise, as they
swung open the door. "Like an oriental bazaar."
"Indiscriminate
pilfering on a wholesale basis." Op Owen corrected him, glancing around at
the rich brilliant velvet drapes framing the dingy window to the wildly
clashing pillows thrown on the elegant Empire loveseat. A marble-topped table
was a jumble of pretty vases, silver boxes and goblets. Priceless china held
decaying remains of food. Underneath the table were jaggedly opened, empty cans
bearing the label of an extremely expensive caterer. Two empty champagne
bottles pointed green, blind eyes in their direction. A portable color 'caster
was piled with discarded clothing; a black-lace sheer body stocking draped in
an obscene posture across the inactive screen. "A magpie's nest
rather," he sighed, "and I'd hazard that Maggie is very young and has
been poor all her life until . . ." He met Pennstrak's sympathetic gaze.
"Until our educational program gave her the hints she needed to unlock her
special Talent."
"Gillings
is going to have to work with you on this, Dave," Pennstrak said
reluctantly as he reached for the intercom at his belt. "But first he's
going to have to apologize."
Op Owen
shook his head vigorously. "I want his cooperation, Julian, grudged or
willing. When he really believes in Talent, then he will apologize voluntarily
. . . and obliquely."
To op
Owen's consternation, Gillings arrived noisily in the cowlike lab copter,
sirens going, lights flashing.
"Don't
bother now," op Owen said to Pennstrak for he could see the City Manager
forming a furious reprimand,
"She
might have been warned by the finders' activity anyhow."
"Well,
she's certainly been warned off now." Pennstrak stalked off, to confer
with one of his aides just as Gillings strode into the corridor with his
technicians.
According
op Owen and Grade the merest nod, Gillings began issuing crisp orders. He knew
his business, op Owen thought, and he evidently trusted these technicians for
he didn't bother to crowd into the tiny apartment to oversee them.
"As
soon as your men have prints and a physical profile, Commissioner, we'd like to
run the data through our computer. There's the chance that the girl did take
advantage of the open Talent test the Center has been advertising."
"You
mean you don't know who it is yet?"
"I
could 'find' the coat only because I knew what it looked like," Gil Grade
said, bristling at" Gillings's manner.
"Then
where is it?" and Gillings gestured preemptorily to the sable-less
apartment.
"These
are the shoes, Commissioner," said one of his team, presenting the fragile
strap and jeweled footwear, now neatly sealed in clear plastic. "Traces of
dirt, dust, fleck of nail enamel and from the 'scope imprint, I'd say they were
too big for her."
Gillings
stared at the shoes disinterestedly. "No sign of the dress?"
"Still
looking."
"Odd
that you people can't locate a girl with bare feet in a sable coat and a bright
blue silk gown?"
"No
odder than it is for your hundreds of patrolmen throughout the city,
Commissioner, to overlook a girl so bizarrely dressed," said op Owen with
firm good humor. "When you 'saw' the coat, Gil, where was it?"
"Thrown
across the loveseat, one arm hanging down to the floor. I distinguished the
edge of the sill and the tree outside, the first folds of the curtain and the
wall heating
unit. I
called in, you sent over enough finders so that we were able to eliminate the
similarities. It took us nearly an hour..."
"Were
you keeping an 'eye' on the coat all the time?" Gillings demanded in a
voice so devoid of expression that his contempt was all the more obvious.
Gil
flushed, bit his lip and only partially inhibited by op Owen's subtle warning,
snapped back, "Try keeping your physical eye on an object for an
hour!"
"Get
some rest, Gil," op Owen said gently. He waited until the finder had
turned the corner: "If you are as determined to find this criminal as you
say you are, Commissioner Gillings, then do not destroy the efficiency of my
staff by such gratuitous criticism. In less than four hours, on the basis of
photographs of the stolen objects, we located this apartment..."
"But
not the criminal, who is still in possession of a sable coat which you found
once but have now unaccountably lost."
"That's
enough, Gillings," said Pennstrak who had rejoined them. "Thanks to
your arrival, the girl must know she's being sought and is shielding."
Pennstrak
gestured toward the dingy windows of the flat, through which the vanes of the
big copter were visible. A group of children, abandoning the known objects of
the development play-yard, had gathered at a respectful, but
curiosity-satisfying distance.
"Considering
the variety of her accomplishments," op Owen said, not above using
Pennstrak's irritation with his Commissioner to advantage, "I'm sure she
knew of the search before the Commissioner's arrival, Julian. Have any of these
items been reported, Commissioner?"
"That
console was. Two days ago. It was on 'find,' too."
"She
has been growing steadily bolder, then," op Owen went on, depressed by
Gillings's attitude. And depressed that such a Talent had emerged twisted,
perverted, selfish. Why? Why? "If your department ever gets the chronology
of the various thefts, we'd appreciate the copy."
"Why?"
Gillings turned to stare at op Owen, surprised and irritated.
"Talent
takes time to develop—in ordinary persons. It does not, like the ancient
goddess Athena, spring full-grown from the forehead. This girl could not, for
instance, have lifted that portable set the first tune she used her Talent. The
more data we have on ... the lecture is ill-timed."
Gillings's
unspoken "you said it" did reach op Owen whose turn it was to stare
in surprise.
"Well,
your 'finders' are not novices," the Commissioner said aloud. "If
they traced the coat once, why not again?"
"Every
perceptive we have is searching," op Owen said. "But, if she was able
to leave this apartment after Gil found the coat, taking it with her, because
it obviously is not here, she also is capable of shielding herself and that
coat. And, until she slips that guard, I doubt we'll find it or her."
The
report on the laboratory findings was exhaustive. There was a full set of
prints, foot and finger. None matched those on file in the city records, or
Federal or Immigration. She had not been tested at the Center. Long coarse
black hair had been found. Analysis of skin flakes suggested an olive
complexion. Thermo-photography placed her last appearance in the room at
approximately the time the four 'finders' fixed on her apartment, thus
substantiating op Owen's guess. The thermal prints also revealed that she was
of slender build, approximately 5'4", weighing 105 pounds. Stains on a
paring knife proved her to possess blood type O. No one else had occupied the
apartment within the eight day range of the thermography used.
From
such records, the police extrapolator made a rough sketch of "Maggie
O" which she was called for want of a better name. The sketch was taken
around the neigh-
borhood
with no success. People living in Block Q didn't bother people who didn't
bother them.
It was
Daffyd op Owen who remembered the children crowding the police copter. From
them he elicited the information that she was new in the building. (The records
indicated that the apartment should be vacant.) She was always singing, dancing
to the wall 'caster, and changing her clothes. Occasionally she'd play with
them and bring out rich food to eat, promising they could have such good things
if they'd think hard about them. While the children talked, Daffyd
"saw" Maggie's face reflected in their minds. The police extrapolator
had been far short of the reality. She was not much older than the children she
had played with. She had not been pretty by ordinary standards but she had been
so "different" that her image had registered sharply. The narrow face,
the brilliant eyes, slightly slanted above sharp cheekbones, the thin, small
mouth and the pointed chin were unusual even in an area of ethnic variety.
This
likeness and a physical description were circulated quickly to be used at all
exits to the city and all transportation facilities. It was likely she'd try to
slip out during the day-end exodus.
The
south and west airstrips had been under a perceptive surveillance since the
search had been inaugurated. Now every facility was guarded.
Gil
Grace "found" the coat again.
"She
must have it in a suitcase," he reported on the police-provided handunit
from his position in the main railroad concourse. "It's folded and
surrounded by dark. It's moving up and down. But there're so many people. So
many suitcases. I'll circulate. Maybe the find'll fix itself."
Gillings
gave orders to his teams on the master unit which had been set up in the
Center's control room to coordinate the operations.
"You
better test Gil for precog," Charlie muttered to op
Owen
after they'd contacted all the sensitives. "He asked for the
station."
"You
should've told me sooner, Charlie. I'd've teamed him with a sensitive."
"Look
at that," Charlie exclaimed, pointing to a wildly moving needle on one of
the remotes.
Les was
beside it even as the audio for the Incident went on.
"Not
that track! Oh! Watch out! Baggage. On the handcart! Watch out. Move, man.
Move! To the right The right! Ahhhh." The woman's voice choked off in an
agonized cry.
Daffyd
pushed Charlie out of the way, to get to the speaker.
"Gil,
this is op Owen. Do not pursue. Do not pursue that girl! She's aware of you.
Gil, come in. Answer me, Gil. . . . Charlie, keep trying to raise him.
Gillings, contact your men in the station. Make them stop Gil Grade."
"Stop
him? Why?"
"The
precog. The baggage on the handcart," shouted Daffyd, signaling
frantically to Lester to explain in detail. He raced for the emergency stairs,
up the two flights, and slammed out onto the roof. Gasping physically for
breath, he clung to the high retaining wall and projected his mind to Gil's.
He knew
the man so well, had trained Gil when an employee brought in the kid who had a
knack for locating things. Op Owen could see him ducking and dodging through
the trainward crowds, touching suitcases, ignoring irate or astonished
carriers; every nerve, every ounce of him receptive to the "feel" of
a dense, dark sable fur. And so singleminded that Daffyd could not
"reach" him.
But op
Owen knew the instant the loaded baggage cart swerved and crushed the blindly
intent Talent against an I-beam. He bowed his head, too fully cognizant that a
double tragedy had occurred. Gil was lost. . . and so now was the girl.
There
was no peace from his thoughts even when he returned to the shielded control
room. Lester and Charlie pretended to be very busy. Gillings was. He directed
the search of the railway station, arguing with the station-master that the
trains were to be held and that was that, The drone of his voice began to
penetrate op Owen's remorse.
"All
right, then, if the Talents have cleared it and there's no female of the same
height and weight, release that train. Someone tried the Johns, didn't they?
No, Sam, you can detain anyone remotely suspicious. That girl is clever,
strong, and dangerous. There's no telling what else she could do. But she damn
well can't change her height, weight and blood type!"
"Daffyd.
Daffyd." Lester had to touch him to get his attention. He motioned op Owen
towards Charlie who was holding out the handunit.
"It's
Cole's, sir."
Daffyd
listened to the effusively grateful store manager. He made the proper responses
but it wasn't until he had relinquished the handunit to Charlie that the man's
excited monologue made sense.
"The
coat, the dress and the necklace have reappeared on the store dummy," op
Owen said. He cleared his throat and repeated it loud enough to be heard.
"Returned?"
Gillings echoed. "Just like that? Why, the little bitch! Sam, check the
ladies rooms in that station. Wait, isn't there a discount dress store in that
station? Have them check for missing apparel. I want an itemized list of what's
gone, and an exact duplicate from their stock shown to the sensitives. We've
got her scared and running now."
"Scared
and running now." Gillings's smug assessment rang ominously in Daffyd's
mind. He had a sudden flash. Superimposed over a projection of Maggie's thin
face was the image of the lifeless store dummy, elegantly re-clad in the
purloined blue gown and dark fur. "Here, take them back. I don't want them
anymore. I didn't mean to
kill
him. I didn't mean to. See, I gave back what you wanted. Now leave me
alone!"
Daffyd
shook his head. Wishful thinking. Just as futile as the girl's belated gesture
of penance. Too much too soon. Too little too late.
"We
don't want her scared," he said outloud. "She was scared when she
toppled that baggage cart."
"She
killed a man when she toppled that baggage cart, op Owen!" Gillings was
all but shouting.
"And
if we're not very careful, she'll kill others."
"If
you think I'm going to velvet glove a homicidal maniac..."
A
shrill tone issuing from the remote unit forced Gil-lings to answer. He was
about to reprimand the caller but the message got stunned attention.
"We
can forget the paternal bit, Owen.. She knocked down every one of your people
and mine at the Oriole Street entrance. Your men are unconscious. Mine and
about twenty or more innocent commuters are afflicted with blinding headaches.
Got any practical ideas, Owen, on catching this monster you created?"
"Oriole?
Was she heading east or west?" He had to stop that line of talk.
"Does
it matter?"
"If
we're to catch her it does. And we must catch her. She's operating at a psychic
high. There's no telling what she's capable of now. Such Talent has only been a
theoretic possibility ..."
Gillings
lost all control on himself. The fear and hatred burst out in such a wave that
Charlie Moorfield, caught unawares, erupted out of his chair towards Gillings
in an instinctive defense reaction.
"Gillings!"
"Charlie!" Les and Daffyd shouted together, each grabbing the wild
combatants. But Charlie, his face white with shock at his own reaction, had
himself in hand. Sinking weakly back into his chair, he gasped out an apology.
"You
mean, you want to have more monsters like her
and
him?" Gillings demanded. Between his voice and the violent emotions,
Daffyd's head rang with pain and confusion.
"Don't
be a fool," Lester said, grabbing the Commissioner by the arm. "You
can't spew emotions like that around a telepath and not get a reaction. Look at
Daffyd! Look at Charlie! Christ man, you're as bad as the scared, mixed-up kid
. . ." and then Les dropped Gillings's arm and stared at him in amazement.
"Christ, you're a telepath yourself!"
"Quiet,
everybody," Daffyd said with such urgency he had their instant attention.
"I've the solution. And there's no time to waste. Charlie, I want Harold
Orley airbound in the Clinic's copter heading south to the Central Station in
nothing flat. We'll correct course en route. Gillings, I want two of the
strongest, most stable patrolmen on your roster. I want them armed with
fast-acting, double-strength trank guns and airborne to rendezvous near Central
Station."
"Harold?"
Les echoed in blank astonishment. Then relief colored his face as he understood
Daffyd's intentions. "Of course. Nothing can stop Harold. And no one can
read him coming."
"Nothing.
And no one," op Owen agreed, bleakly.
Gillings
turned from issuing his orders to see an ambulance copter heading west across
the sky.
"We're
following?"
Daffyd
nodded and gestured for Gillings to precede him to the roof. He didn't look
back but he knew what Les and Charlie did not say.
She had
been seen running east on Oriole. And she was easy to follow. She left people
doubled up with nausea and crying with head pains. That is, until she crossed
Boulevard.
"We'll
head south, south east on an intercept," Gillings told his pilot and had
him relay the correction to the ambulance. "She's heading to the
sea?" he asked rhetorically
as he
rummaged for the correct airmap of the city. "Here. We can set down at
Seaman's Park. She can't have made it that far ... unless she can fly
suddenly." Gillings looked up at op Owen.
"She
probably could teleport herself," Daffyd answered, watching the
Commissioner's eyes narrow in adverse reaction to the admission. "But she
hasn't thought of it yet. As long as she can be kept running, too scared to
think . . ." That necessity plagued Daffyd op Owen. They were going to
have to run her out of her mind.
Gillings
ordered all police hovercraft to close in on the area where she was last seen,
blocks of residences and small businesses of all types.
By the
time the three copters had made their rendezvous at the small Park, there were
no more visible signs of Maggie O's retreat.
As
Gillings made to leave the copter, Daffyd op Owen stopped him.
"If
you're not completely under control, Gillings, Harold will be after you."
Gillings
looked at the director for a long moment, his jaw set stubbornly. Then, slowly,
he settled into the seat and handed op Owen a remote comunit.
"Thanks,
Gillings," he said, and left the copter. He signaled to the ambulance to
release Harold Orley and then strode across the grass to the waiting officers.
The two
biggest men were as burly as he could wish. Being trained law enforcers, they
ought to be able to handle Orley. Op Owen "pushed" gently against
their minds and was satisfied with his findings. They possessed the natural
shielding of the untemperamental which made them less susceptible to emotional
storms. Neither Webster or Heis were stupid, however, and had been briefed on
developments.
"Orley
has no useful intelligence. He is a human barometer, measuring the intensity
and type of emotions which surround him and reacting instinctively. He does not
broadcast.
He only receives. Therefore he cannot be harmed or identified by ... by Maggie
O. He is the only Talent she cannot 'hear' approaching."
"But,
if he reaches her, he'd . . ." Webster began, measuring Harold with the
discerning eye of a boxing enthusiast. Then he shrugged and turned politely to
op Owen.
"You've
the double strength tranks? Good. I hope you'll be able to use them in time.
But it is imperative that she be apprehended before she does more harm. She has
already killed one man...."
"We
understand, sir," Heis said when op Owen did not continue.
"If
you can, shoot her. Once she stops broadcasting, he'll soon return to a
manageable state." But, Daffyd amended to himself, remembering Harold
sprawled on the ground in front of the building, not soon enough. "She was
last seen on the east side of the Boulevard, about eight blocks from here.
She'd be tired, looking for someplace to hide and rest. But she is also
probably radiating sufficient emotion for Harold to pick up. He'll react by
heading in a straight line for the source. Keep him from trying to plow through
solid walls. Keep your voices calm when you speak to him. Use simple commands.
I see you've got handunits. I'll be airborne; the copter's shielded but I'll
help when I can."
Flanking
Harold, Webster and Heis moved west along Oriole at a brisk, even walk: the two
officers in step, Harold's head bobbing above theirs, out of step—a cruel
irony.
Daffyd
op Owen turned back to the copter. He nodded to Gillings as he seated himself.
He tried not to think at all.
As the
copters lifted from the Park and drifted slowly west amid other air traffic, op
Owen looked sadly down at the people on the streets. At kids playing on the
sidewalks. At a flow of men and women with briefcases or shopping bags,
hurrying home. At snub-nosed city cars
and
squatty trucks angling into parking slots. At the bloated cross-city helibuses
jerking and settling to disgorge their passengers at the street islands.
"He's
twitching," reported Heis in a dispassionate voice.
Daffyd
flicked on the handset. "That's normal. He's beginning to register."
"He's
moving faster now. Keeps wanting to go straight through the buildings."
Reading Heis's undertone, op Owen knew that the men hadn't believed his caution
about Orley plowing through solids. "He's letting us guide him, but he
keeps pushing us to the right. You take his other arm, Web. Yeah, that's better."
Gillings
had moved to the visual equipment along one side of the copter. He focused
deftly in on the trio, magnified it and threw the image on the pilot's screen,
too. The copter adjusted direction.
"Easy,
Orley. No, don't try to stop him, Web. Stop the traffic!"
Orley's
line of march crossed the busier wide north-south street. Webster ran out to
control the vehicles. People turned curiously. Stopped and stared after the
trio.
"Don't,"
op Owen said as he saw Gillings move a hand towards the bullhorn. "There's
nothing wrong with her hearing."
Orley
began to move faster now that he had reached the farther side. He wanted to go
right through intervening buildings.
"Guide
him left to the sidewalk, Heis," op Owen said. "I think he's still
amenable. He isn't running yet."
"He's
breathing hard, Mr. Owen," Heis sounded dubious. "And his face is
changing."
Op Owen
nodded to himself, all too familiar with the startling phenomenon of watching
the blankness of Orley's face take on the classic mask of whatever emotions he
was receiving. It would be a particularly unnerving transition under these
conditions.
"What
does he show?"
"I'd
say ... hatred," Heis's voice dropped on the last word. Then he added in
his usual tone, "He's smiling, too, and it isn't nice."
They
had eased Orley to the sidewalk heading west. He kept pushing Webster to the
right and his pace increased until it was close to a run. Webster and Heis
began to gesture people out of their way but it would soon be obvious to the
neighborhood that something was amiss. Would it be better to land more police
to reassure people and keep their emanations down? Or would they broadcast too
much suppressed excitement at police interference? She'd catch that. Should he
warn Heis and Webster to keep their thoughts on Harold Orley? Or would that be
like warning them against all thoughts of the camel's left knee?
Orley
broke into a run. Webster and Heis were hard put to keep him to the sidewalk.
"What's
in the next block?" op Owen asked Gillings.
The
Commissioner consulted the map, holding it just above the scanner so he could
keep one eye on the trio below.
"Residences
and an area parking facility for interstate trucking." Gillings turned to
op Owen now, his heavy eyebrows raised in question.
"No,
she's still there because Orley is homing in on her projection."
"Look
at his face! My God!" Heis exclaimed over the handunit. On the screen, his
figure had stopped. He was pointing at Orley. But Webster's face was clearly
visible to the surveillers and what he saw unnerved him.
Orley
broke from his guides. He was running, slowly at first but gathering speed
steadily, mindlessly brushing aside anything that stood in his way. Heis and
Webster went after him but both men were shaking their heads as if something
were bothering them. Orley tried to plunge through a brick store wall. He
bounced off it, saw the unimpeded view of his objective and charged forward.
Web-
ster
had darted ahead of him, blowing his whistle to stop the oncoming traffic. Heis
alternately yelled into the hand-unit and at startled bystanders. Now some of
them were afflicted and were grabbing their heads.
"Put
us on the roof," op Owen told the pilot. "Gillings, get men to cover
every entrance and exit to that parking lot. Get the copters to hover by the
open levels. The men'll be spared some of the lash."
It
wouldn't do much good, op Owen realized, even as he felt the first shock of the
girl's awareness of imminent danger.
"Close
your mind," he yelled at the pilot and Gillings. "Don't think."
"My
head, my head." It was Heis groaning.
"Concentrate
on Orley," op Owen said, his hands going to his temples in reaction to the
knotting pressure. Heis's figure on the scanner staggered after Orley who had
now entered the parking facility.
Op Owen
caught the mental pressure and dispersed it, projecting back
reassurance/help/protection/compassion. He could forgive her Gil Grade's death.
So would any Talent. If she would instantly surrender, somehow the Center would
protect her from the legal aspects of her act. Only surrender now.
Someone
screamed. Another man echoed that piercing cry. The copter bucked and jolted
them. The pilot was groaning and gasping. Gillings plunged forward, grabbing
the controls.
Op
Owen, fighting an incredible battle, was blind to physical realities. If he
could just occupy all the attention of that over-charged mind . . . hold it
long enough . . . pain/fear/black/red/moiled-orange/purples . . . breathing ...
shock. Utter disbelief/fear/loss of confidence. Frantic physical effort.
Concrete
scraped op Owen's cheek. His fingers bled as he clawed at a locked steel exit
door on the roof. He could not enter. He had to reach her FIRST!
Somehow
his feet found the stairs as he propelled himself down the fire escape,
deliberately numbing his mind to the intensive pounding received. A pounding
that became audible.
Then he
saw her, fingers clawing for leverage on the stairpost, foot poised for the
step from the landing. A too-thin adolescent figure, frozen for a second with
indecision and shock; strands of black hair like vicious scars across a thin
face, distorted and ugly from the tremendous physical and mental efforts of the
frantic will. Her huge eyes, black with insane fury and terror, bloodshot with
despair and the salty sweat of her desperate striving for escape, looked into
his.
She
knew him for what he was; and her hatred crackled in his mind. Those
words—after Gil Gracie's death—had been hers, not his distressed imagining. She
had known him then as her real antagonist. Only now, was he forced to recognize
her for what she was, all she was—and regrettably, all she would not be.
He
fought the inexorable decision of that split-second confrontation, wanting more
than anything else in his life that it did not have to be so.
She was
the wiser! She whirled!
She was
suddenly beyond the heavy fire door without opening it. Harold Orley, charging
up the stairs behind her, had no such Talent. He crashed with sickening force
into the metal door. Daffyd had no alternative. She had teleported. He steadied
the telempath, depressed the lock bar and threw the door wide.
Orley
was after the slender figure fleeing across the dimly lit, low-ceiling concrete
floor. She was heading towards the down ramp now.
"Stop,
stop," op Owen heard his voice begging her.
Heis
came staggering from the stairway.
"Shoot
him. For Christ's sake, shoot Orley, Heis," op Owen yelled.
Heis
couldn't seem to coordinate. Op Owen tried to
push
aside his fumbling hands and grab the trank gun himself. Heis's trained
reflexes made him cling all the tighter to his weapon. Just then, op Owen heard
the girl's despairing shriek.
Two men
had appeared at the top of the ramp. They both fired, the dull reports of trank
pistols accentuated by her choked gasp.
"Not
her. Shoot Orley. Shoot the man," op Owen cried but it was too late.
Even as
the girl crumpled to the floor, Orley grabbed her. Grabbed and tore and beat at
the source of the emotions which so disturbed him. Beat and tore and stamped
her physically as she had assaulted him mentally.
Orley's
body jerked as tranks hit him from all sides, but it took far too long for them
to override the adrenal reactions of the overcharged telempath.
There
was pain and pity as well as horror in Gillings's eyes when he came running
onto the level. The police stood at a distance from the blood-spattered bodies.
"Gawd,
couldn't someone have stopped him from getting her?" the copter pilot
murmured, turning away from the shapeless bloodied thing half-covered by
Orley's unconscious body.
"The
door would have stopped Orley but he," and Heis grimly pointed at op Owen,
"opened it for him."
"She
teleported through the door," op Owen said weakly. He had to lean against
the wall. He was beginning to shudder uncontrollably from reaction. "She
had to be stopped. Now. Here. Before she realized what she'd done. What she
could do." His knees buckled. "She teleported through the door!"
Unexpectedly
it was Gillings who came to his aid, a Gillings whose mind was no longer
shielded but broadcasting compassion and awe, and understanding.
"So
did you."
The
phrase barely registered in op Owen's mind when he passed out.
"That's
all that remains of the late Solange Boshe," Gillings said, tossing the
file reel to the desk. "As much of her life as we've been able to piece
together. Gypsies don't stay long anywhere."
"There're
some left?" Lester Welch asked, frowning at the three-inch condensation of
fifteen years of a human life.
"Oh
there are, I assure you," Gillings replied, his tone souring slightly for
the first time since he had entered the office. "The tape also has a
lengthy interview with Bill Jones, the cousin the social worker located after
Solange had recovered from the bronchial pneumonia. He had no idea,"
Gillings hastily assured them, "that there is any reason other than a
routine check on the whereabouts of a runaway county ward. He had a
hunch," and Gillings grimaced, "that the family had gone on to
Toronto. They had. He also thought that they had probably given the girl up for
dead when she collapsed on the street. The Toronto report substantiates that.
So I don't imagine it will surprise you, op Owen, that her tribe, according to
Jones, are the only ones still making a living at fortune-telling,
palm-reading, tea-leaves and that bit."
"Now,
just a minute, Gillings," Lester began, bristling. He subsided when he saw
that his boss and the Police Commissioner were grinning at each other.
"So
. . . just as you suspected, op Owen, she was a freak Talent. We know from the
ward nurses that she watched your propaganda broadcasts during her
hospitalization. We can assume that she was aware of the search either when Gil
Gracie 'found' the coat, or when the definite fix was made. It's not hard to
guess her motivation in making the heist in the first place, nor her
instinctive desire to hide." Gillings gave his head an abrupt violent jerk
and stood up. He started to hold out his hand, remembered and raised it in a
farewell gesture. "You are continuing those broadcasts, aren't you?"
Lester
Welch glared so balefully at the Commissioner that op Owen had to chuckle.
"With
certain deletions, yes."
"Good.
Talent must be identified and trained. Trained young and well if they are to
use their Talent properly." Gillings stared op Owen in the eye. "The
Boshe girl was bad, op Owen, bad clear through. Listen to what Jones said about
her and you won't regret Tuesday too much. Sometimes the young are inflexible, too."
"I
agree, Commissioner," Daffyd said, escorting the man to the door as calmly
as if he hadn't heard what Gillings was thinking so clearly. "And we
appreciate your help in the cover yarns that explained Tuesday's odd
occurrences."
"A
case of mutual understanding," Gillings said, his eyes glinting. "Oh,
no need to see me out. I can open this door."
That
door was no sooner firmly shut behind him than Lester Welch turned on his
superior.
"And
just who was scratching whose back then?" he demanded. "Don't you
dare come over innocent, either, Daffyd op Owen. Two days ago that man was your
enemy, bristling with enough hate and distrust to antagonize me."
"Remember
what you said about Gillings Tuesday?"
"There's
been an awful lot of idle comment around here lately."
"Frank
Gillings is telepathic." Then he added as Lester was choking on the news:
"And he doesn't want to be. So he's suppressed it. Naturally he'd be
antagonistic."
"Hah!"
"He's
not too old, but he's not flexible enough to adapt to Talent, having denied it
so long."
"I'll
buy that. But what was that parting shot—'I can open this door'?" Lester
mimicked the Commissioner's deep voice.
"I'm
too old to learn new tricks, too, Les. I teleported through the roof door of
that parking facility. He saw me do it. And she saw the memory of it in my
mind. If she'd
lived,
she'd've picked my mind clean. And—I didn't want her to die."
Op Owen
turned abruptly to the window, trying to let the tranquillity of the scene
restore his equilibrium. It did—until he saw Harold Orley plodding along the
path with his guide. Instantly a white, wide-eyed, hair-streaked face was
superimposed over the view.
The
intercom beeped and he depressed the key for his sanity's sake.
"We've
got a live one, Boss," and Sally Iselin's gay voice restored him. "A
strong precog with kinetic possibilities. And guess what?" Sally's
excitement made her voice breathless. "He said the cop on his beat told
him to come in. He doesn't want any more trouble with the cops so he ..."
"Would
his name be Bill Jones?"
"However
did you know?"
"And
that's no precog, Sally," op Owen said with a ghost of a laugh, aware he
was beginning to look forward again. "A sure thing's no precog, is it,
Les?"
A
Bridle for Pegasus
Julian
Pennstrak, Jerhattan City Manager, Daffyd op Owen, Director of the East
American Parapsychic Center, and Frank Gillings, Commissioner of Law
Enforcement and Order, had gathered in the latter's office: an appropriate
setting as the four sides of the tower office were tough plexiglass so the
occupants had a full panoramic view of the city they managed or foresaw and
protected.
"The
Maggie O affair was not without some reward," Daffyd op Owen reminded the
other two. "Her . . . relation ... in whatever degree of cousinship Bill
Jones stood ... is proving to be a sound precog."
Gillings
grunted and rubbed the side of his fleshy nose, registering skepticism.
"Half
a city semi-paralyzed with blinding headaches, two dead, and a lot of public
lying and you say there was some reward!"
"You
do tend to adopt a negative attitude, don't you, Frank?" the City Manager
remarked, half amused. He was watching op Owen from the corner of his eye. He
knew that the Director of the Parapsychic Center had been deeply shaken by the
deaths of Gil Gracie and Solange Boshe, a.k.a. Maggie O. And the curious
sparring between Gillings and op Owen dated from that incident: the one
grudging admiration and the other exhibiting wistful regret. Well, Pennstrak
possessed a certain empathy himself which told him not to delve too deeply into
the denouement of that incident. Suffice it to say, the
truth
about Maggie's sudden rise and demise had been successfully obscured from
public notice and, if Daffyd were satisfied that some profit existed on the
black side of the ledger, the City Manager would be content.
"Nonetheless," Julian Pennstrak continued, "the Professional
Immunity Law is now, as of yesterday, programmed into Federal Books and State
Law Machinery. What's your problem now, Frank?"
"It's
this: if renegades like Solange Boshe can exist, how do we smell 'em out before
they cause trouble? Now," and he held up his hand as Daffyd op Owen opened
his mouth to speak, "I know you've got a subliminal TRI-D program going,
Dave, but just how successful is it in routing out the odd-balls?"
Op Owen
winced at Gillings's phraseology.
"Unfortunately
only tune will tell. We do have Bill Jones, Maggie O's cousin, and he'll be a
first rate precog. Sally Iselin at the Testing Clinic has upwards of fifty
applicants a day." He sighed. "Most are wishful thinkers, I'm afraid,
but occasionally a live one does come in. You can't make people get
Talent-tested."
"What
we need," the LEO Commissioner said in a deadly voice, "is enforced
testing."
"Of
nine million people?" asked Pennstrak, good-humoredly aghast.
Gillings
grunted. "The mavericks cost us more."
Pennstrak
agreed to that.
"Better
still, early testing would be a tremendous help," Daffyd op Owen said.
"Our sensitives in the maternity wards do catch the occasional strong one
at birth. But we lack adequate facilities and more important, the personnel. It
takes a special kind of Talent, in itself, to spot embryo Talents. Sally Iselin
is acutely sensitive in this area and I thank Providence for her presence in
the Clinic. She's never been wrong in her assessments. But she's the only one
Eastern has and she's overworked as it is." Daffyd smiled and decided
against what he'd been about to confide. The dour face of Lester Welch leered
at him:
For Christ's sake, Dave, don't tell everybody everything you know. They don't
always want to hear it. For instance, Daffyd doubted that Frank Gillings would
take kindly to the notion that Sally Iselin's chief assistant at the moment was
the two-year-old Dorotea Horvath, the extraordinarily Talented daughter of two
of his people. Dorotea came every morning and afternoon to the Clinic, to
"play" in the room full of applicants. She'd instinctively approach
anyone with the least vestige of Talent so that Sally could give the deeper
testing. The others could be dismissed after the routine examinations, none the
wiser for the pre-selection. Dorotea was blissfully unaware of what she could
do—she simply did it.
"Talent
is sometimes latent," Daffyd told Gillings, "as it was in Solange
Boshe, springing into maturity under pressure. But different minds react to
different stimuli and the powerful Talent, such as Solange's, to another set
entirely. Talent can also be consciously or subconsciously suppressed since any
Talent singles one out for the unwelcome attentions of the less gifted. We do
try to alleviate that envy with our public information broadcasts on what
Talent does to relieve ..."
Gillings
cut him off with a brusque wave of his hand. As much, Daffyd op Owen thought
wryly, because Gil-lings was a latent who had no wish to be trained or reminded
of this defection.
"Sorry
for the lecture," op Owen said with an apologetic grin, "but you must
realize that we are limited in what we can do even with all the Talent at our
disposal. Nor can we foresee the stray maturing of Talent. Your LEO operatives,
Frank, have all the information we've collated on how to spot the latent or
unconscious Talent What more can we do?"
"Get
your Senator friend to write a rider on that Immunity Law," said Gillings
in a growl, "that it's illegal to be Talented and conceal it."
Daffyd
returned Gillings's half guilty glare with a wide-eyed look of surprise.
Gillings's perception was not dull:
he knew
what was behind op Owen's grin and he
scowled fiercely at him.
"I'll
suggest it to Joel Andres when next we meet," op Owen said politely.
"It's a point well taken."
"How
in hell could you implement such a statute under the conditions you've just
cited, Daffyd?" demanded Pennstrak with understandable disgust. "No
facilities, not enough Talent. Besides, latents wouldn't know and therefore
wouldn't register, and a Talent who knew of his ability could claim he
didn't."
"Well,
it'd be a help to me," Gillings said, still in a growling mood. Yet he
glanced at op Owen with less choler. Obviously the telepath hadn't mentioned
Gillings's latent abilities to the City Manager. The man knew when to keep his
mouth shut. "I could shut up suspects and keep them from running amok like
that gypsy girl."
Op
Owen's smile faded.
"You
can't suppress or contain Talent, Frank. That'd put exactly the sort of
pressure on them we'd want at all costs to avoid. There's so much we don't know
about the parapsychic, so much."
"Like
what for instance?" asked the LEO Commissioner, steeling himself for
unwelcome information.
Op Owen
spread his hands wide. "I can't tell you. I'm not a precog." To which
he added a devout and silent "Amen!"
Gillings
unloosed another grunt. "Now, on that score, have your Talents come up
with anything on this ethnic employment allocation nonsense? You guys are, I
sincerely trust, pan-ethnic?"
"Demonstrably."
Gillings
gave him a long look as if he suspected op Owen of facetiousness. Julian
Pennstrak cleared his throat hastily.
"That's
one less headache at any rate," the LEO man went on, "but your
precogs haven't had any Incidents beyond this nebulous warning?" He tapped
the Incident
readings
which had been sent to his office the previous day.
Daffyd
shook his head. "The precognitive faculty is the most erratic but
generally speaking, the larger the number of people involved, the greater the
possibility of detailed Incidents. Or, conversely, the severer the change to a
prominent person or a linked or emotional association, the more likelihood of a
definitive Incident.
"The
old tea-leaf and card readers attempted to tell the future, anyone's future:
and while I suppose they could generalize for the average soul well enough, the
best of them were only accurate when predicting the future of lives which
affected a large section of general mankind Some precogs operate only on a
direct confrontation with a personality, which is why we keep key personnel
folders with those sensitives. But you can't actually provoke a precog.
"In
the instance of Maggie O: she was a fluke to begin with, an isolated case,
unintegrated in any group or with any affiliation that would cause one of our
precogs to 'read' for her. That is, until circumstances put her in a position
to cross Gil Gracie's lifeline. Then we had a reading on him, but only because
the precog was tuned to Gil.
"There
are, as I keep saying ad nauseam I know, a lot of parapsychic manifestations
about which we know nothing. Every tune I believe I understand one combination
or facet, exceptions to that comprehension appear to confound me.
"Henry
Darrow said that having any Talent is like riding a winged horse, you get a
magnificent view but you can't always dismount when you want to."
Gillings
had waited patiently through op Owen's peroration; now he rattled the urgently
tagged tapes on his desk. Pennstrak regarded the Director with new insight.
"I'd
always thought that Pegasus was the symbol of poetry . . . flights of verbal
fantasy. But I must say, I like
your
notion, Dave. A winged horse is an appropriate mount for you people. Not that
I'd have the courage to hop on its back."
"If
you two would deign to consider the mundane problems of the earthbound,"
Gillings said in an acid tone of voice, "just how in hell are we going to
find jobs for all these eager mud-grubbers?"
On a
morning some two months later when Daffyd op Owen reached his office, there was
a message on his desk to call Sally Iselin as soon as he had a moment. To a
semantically-sensitive personality, the phrasing was provocative, added to the
fact that Sally Iselin was in charge of recruit-testing. Daffyd punched her
call numbers as soon as he read the note, disregarding other red and white
flagged tapes and messages. If only one psi-latent was uncovered in a month of
public information broadcasts, the program would be worth its cost.
"Daffyd
here, Sally. You rang me?"
"Oh,
Daffyd!" She sounded surprised and a tinge embarrassed. "I'm not
really certain if I should bother you..."
"My
great-grandmother used to say, 'If it's doubtful, it's dirty.'"
"I'm
not talking about a shirt, Daffyd," and Sally's usual levity was missing.
"I'm talking about people."
"Which
people?" It was like pulling screws from wood: intriguingly un-Sallyish.
"Well,
Daffyd, I'd hate to prejudice you. But . . . well, would you take me out
tonight? There's a place I want you to feel. I can't figure out what it is
myself and I know something happened."
"Curiouser
and curiouser. You've hooked me..."
"Oh,
damn. I don't want to hook you. I've gone and done what I shouldn't ta
oughta."
Daffyd
laughed. "Sally, all you've done is arouse my very considerable,
insatiable curiosity."
"All
right, elephant's child. Pick me up at nine; you'll need the copter and
money." Her voice darkened with baleful implications of wild spending and
debauchery, but there was a rippling undercurrent of laughter which told Daffyd
that Sally was herself again.
"With
as many bundles as Lester will allow me. At 9!"
He
depressed the comset button just as the door opened to admit Lester Welch.
"What's
on Iselin's alleged mind?"
"I
can't 'path over a phone," Daffyd replied, deliberately misinterpreting
Lester.
The man
swore and glared sourly at his boss. "All right, so you won't talk either.
Maybe I've no Talent but I don't need it to know something's got Sally excited.
She's so careful to sound calm."
Daffyd
shrugged his shoulders and reached for the in-tapes. "Soon as I know, you
will. Anything else bothering you this fine morning? And Sally says I need
bundles tonight."
Lester
eyed him in surprise for a moment and then snorted. He pointed to the
finance-coded blue tape among the urgent flags Daffyd was fingering.
"Some
local yokel from East Waterless Ford up-state wants to tax the Center's
residential accommodations, same as any other apartment block. Claims the
revenue on such 'high income residents' would reduce the state's deficit by
9%."
Daffyd
whistled appreciatively. "He's probably right but for the fact that this
is a registered restricted commune and those high-income residents turn every
credit of their salaries over to the Center."
"Listen,
Dave, he's building a pretty good case."
Op Owen
sighed. There was always something or someone or some committee picking away at
the Center, trying to disrupt, destroy or discredit it despite all the careful
publicity.
"They
did the same thing in New Jersey, you know,
when
the Princeton University Complex put up those academician villages to
counteract the high price of real estate and taxes," Lester reminded him
sourly.
"I'll
listen, I'll listen. Now, go away, Les." Daffyd inserted Welch's tape in
the console.
Lester
growled something under his breath as he left. And Daffyd op Owen listened. He
didn't like what he heard but the State Senator had certainly done some of his
homework. Revenues from the Center's residential buildings would indeed be a
tidy pile in the State's chronically anemic Treasury. Only the Center was in Jerhattan
proper by a mile and a half, and therefore its revenues were the City's, if
anyone's.
"Get
me Julian Pennstrak, please," Daffyd asked his secretary.
The
City Manager might be of some assistance here. Certainly he'd be interested in
what this up-state character, Aaron Greenfield (am I always to be
"fielded," Daffyd wondered wryly, remembering his battle with the US
Senator Mansfield Zeusman) is proposing. If Julian didn't already know. Not
much slipped past Pennstrak's affable eagle-eye. Pennstrak wasn't available but
his secretary tactfully put Daffyd through to Pat Tawfik, Pennstrak's speech
writer who was, in actual fact, his Talent guard.
"Yes,
Dave, Julian's been keeping an eye on Green-field's proposal," Pat told
him. "In fact, Julian had him in here for a long cozy chat when we first
got wind of the scheme. Greenfield's like Zeusman: suspicious and scared of us
supermen."
"Julian
told him that the residential buildings are communal ... ?"
"Yes
and Julian showed him the figures the Center files every year, plus the
auditors' reports. Cut no ice! In fact, if anything," and Pat grimaced,
"it only confirmed Greenfield's notion that the Center is a rich source of
additional income."
"The
Center is also in Jerhattan proper."
"Julian
made that point but Greenfield's one of those allocation goons: all for one and
one for all ... all monies being in one kitty—his. He's State Budget Chairman,
you see."
Daffyd
nodded.
"I
didn't want to worry you unnecessarily, Daffyd," Pat went on apologetically.
Daffyd
suppressed a tart rejoinder and sighed instead.
"Pat,
it's easier to pull a weed if it's small."
"A
weed? That's a good one. Greenfield's a weed all right." Pat sounded
unusually acerbic. "I'll tell Julian you called and that you're
worried."
"No.
I'm not worried, Pat. Not yet."
"I
would be if I were you," she said, all gloom.
"Is
there a precog?"
"No
specific ones. But frankly, Dave, I'm far more worried about the city's climate
than anything old Aaron Leftfield perpetrates. And so is Julian. He's
street-walking today." She gave a reassuring wave of her hand. "Oh, I
sent one of the LEO sensitives with him. I can't move so fast these days."
She glanced down at her gravid abdomen. "You've seen my report?"
"You
sent one in?" Daffyd began riffling through the tapes.
"It
should be on your desk. It'd better be on your desk."
Daffyd
found the purple-backed City Admin tape and waved it at her.
"It
is. Lester Welch had first crack at me."
"And
he didn't mention our tape?" She made an exasperated noise. "Look,
Dave, listen to it now because, believe me, it's more important than Greenfield
even if Lester doesn't think so."
"Is
that a precog, Pat?"
"You
tell me it's my condition," she said, suddenly angry, "the way Julian
does or a vitamin deficiency like my OB and I'll resign." The anger as
suddenly drained from her face. "God, don't I just wish I could!"
"Pat,
d'you want a few weeks relief?"
Daffyd
op Owen caught the shifting emotions on her face: sullen resentment giving way
to hope, instantly replaced by resignation. "Don't, Dave."
"I
wouldn't and you know it. I can send out a may-day..."
"And
overwork some other poor Talent?" Pat's chin lifted. "I'll be all
right, Dave. Honest! It's just that . . . well, hell, listen to the report. And
remember, it's a pan-ethnic problem this year."
"This
year?" Another loaded phrase. Daffyd op Owen inserted the City Admin tape
and his concern over the Greenfield proposal faded to insignificance as he
recognized the more imminent danger of a disturbed City. He began to wonder who
else had thought to save their dear Director trouble by not reporting the grim
facts he now heard. Because if the Correlation Staff had slipped up on reading
precogs, he'd downgrade the lot.
Brief,
violent inter-ethnic quarrels over contract employment during the winter had
been mediated but, within the City's ethnic sectors, the truce had been uneasy:
each segment certain that another had received what plums existed. (Most of the
spot employment during the winter had been make-work, paid for by funds pared
from other pressing needs to give the proud their sop.) Most of the agitation
could be traced to a young Pan-Slavic leader, Vsevolod Roznine. The report
noted that Roznine was more feared than popular with his constituents and,
although several attempts had been made to cool or placate the agitator, he had
neatly avoided the traps. The report closed with the note that Roznine might
have latent Talent. However, the only mental contact made had been so
distasteful to the Talent that he had broken it off before he could implant any
suggestion to go to the Center for testing.
"The
man's public mind is a sewer," was the final comment.
Daffyd
op Owen made a steeple of his fingers and,
twirling
his swivel chair, gazed out his window to the orderly grounds below. He felt
unaccountably depressed yet he could be justifiably proud of what Talent in
general and Eastern American Center in particular had been able to accomplish
in the past decades. Op Owen could appreciate, and it was no precog, how much
more had to be done on numerous levels: public, private, civic, clinical,
military, spatial, and most important, inner. No matter what the dominant
Talent, precog, telepath, tele-port, kinetic, empathic, the Talented were still
very human people, above and beyond their special gifts which so often
complicated adjustment therapy.
They
had professional immunity at long last, for all registered Talents. Another
giant step forward. They had had acceptance on a commercial level for many
years where Talent could steadily show profit to management. Since the first
body-Talents had been able to point out assassins in crowds (even before
precogs were accepted and acted on by key personnel), they'd been accepted by
intelligent people. But the suspicious were the majority and they still had to
be convinced that the Talented were not dangerously different.
He'd
ruminated on this many times and it wasn't solving the other pressing problems
before him. A city torn by the very ethnic strife that had once been hailed as
a bonding compromise to the late twentieth century's lack of basic life-style
values: summer was a-coming and, despite advances in weather controls, a hot
dry spell which could cut the power available for city air-conditioning would
only produce riot-breeding conditions.
So far,
no major precogs of disasters had been recorded and for such a large unit as
Jerhattan, a trouble precog was statistically more probable than one dealing
with a small number of people or a single citizen. Scant reassurance, however.
And
thank god, Talent was pan-ethnic, thought Daffyd. He didn't have to worry about
that ugly head rising against the Center.
He did
tape an All-Talent alert on the city's climate. The great minds would now have
a single thought. Perhaps they'd also have an answer.
When he
picked Sally Iselin up at nine at the Clinic door, she gave him a quick
appraising look. Then her anxious-puppy expression changed to a radiant smile.
"I
knew it. I knew it." And she all but war-danced a circle as she inspected
his costume.
"What?"
he asked, turning to keep her face in view.
"You
dressed just right. How'd you know? I'm sure I didn't clue you. Are you
positive you're not a precog, too, Daffyd?"
"I'd
rather not be."
Her
vivacity faded instantly. She put a hand out, aborting the sympathetic gesture
before she actually made a contact. He touched her fingers lightly in
reassurance. -
"Not
to worry. I just had a tedious day. Felt like wearing glad threads."
Sally's
eyes crinkled and her mouth tilted up as she cocked her head to one side.
"You are indeed joyous," she said saucily as her glance took in his
royal blue black-trimmed coverall.
"Look
who's talking," and Daffyd grinned down at Sally in lime green and black
swing tunic and matching high boots. Sally's puppy charm was a tonic and he
wondered, as he often did in her company, why he didn't make more opportunities
to enjoy it.
As he
put a helping hand under her elbow to assist her up to the passenger side of
the two-spot copter, she gave him a startled sideways glance. He caught the
echo of mental astonishment before she started to chatter about the day's
hopeful applicants.
"They
come, Daffyd, swearing oaths that they'd had this or that perception. Dorotea
doesn't tap a one. We go through the routine but even with maximum perceptol,
they come over dead dumb and stone blind."
Sally
was a compulsive talker but Daffyd became aware that her present garrulity was
a shield. He wondered what Sally would need to obscure. Propriety prohibited
his making a quick probe but undoubtedly there'd be clues later on. Sally was
entirely too open to be devious for very long.
She
directed him to Sector K, northwest of the Center, where the worn hills
struggled up from old swamplands: not a salubrious area despite reclamation and
renovation efforts. There were still ruins of early twentieth-century factories
and it was by one such structure, a sprawling half-glass and brick affair, that
Sally directed him to land.
"The
place seems popular enough," Daffyd said as he had to circle several times
to find a site for the copter.
Sally
winced, eyeing the ranks of city-crawlers and the presence of both private and
public transport copters. "Doesn't take long, does it, for the masses to
latch onto a new thrill!"
"Oh?
This is new?" He'd caught the worry tone of her thoughts. "Crowd bad
for the project?"
"I
don't know." She was more than worried. "I just don't know. It's just
that. . ." She broke off, firmly pressing her lips together.
They
stood in a short queue for billets, paying a credit apiece to get in.
"Milking
the golden cow," Sally said with uncharacteristic bitterness as they
passed the billets in at massive sliding doors which separated the outer hall
from the vast factory space beyond.
"Guarding
it, too," Daffyd said, noting the strong-arm types in meshed duty-alls.
"That
might make more sense than you'd guess," Sally said in a very dark voice.
Her mind was practically shouting "trouble."
"Will
we need assistance?" he asked her, estimating how many empathic Talents
might be needed to control a crowd this size.
Sally
didn't answer. She was looking around the enormous open area which was filling
rapidly. It didn't require Talent to appreciate the aura of excited
anticipation that emanated from the audience. The hall was by no means full
yet; half the tables were still empty, but most of the couches of the inner
circles were occupied. Daffyd had never seen such an assortment of styles, ages
and conditions of furnishings.
"They
must have been scouring the Sector," Sally said. Then she indicated a
table on the outer rim: a table, Daffyd noticed, which was convenient to one of
the luminescent exit doors.
They were
barely seated, Daffyd on Queen Anne, Sally on Swedish tubular, before a waiter
inquired their pleasure.
"What's
available?" Sally asked, simulating bored indifference. Daffyd was
surprised that she felt the need to dissemble.
"You
name it," replied the concessionaire, impatient. His tables were filling
up.
Sally
"told" Daffyd that this, too, was an innovation.
"Try
something simple, schatzie," Daffyd said, managing the verbal slurs of
their assumed roles. "The Med-board warned you and I'm not copting you to
the drain-brain again this month."
Sally
affected petulance, then with dutiful resignation, asked for a mild caffeine.
Daffyd, in character, asked for an esoteric blend.
"Nor
am I copting you!"
"Make
it two milds and bring the pot."
As the
conman left, Daffyd leaned towards Sally. "Is this area disaffected?"
She
wrinkled her nose. "We get a lot of hopefuls from this Sector."
Sound
had come on, more frequency drone than actual note. The dim lights on the
girders were beginning to fade completely, and ground spots lit up, adding
their eerie moiety to the ambience. Sally looked toward the
half-circle
of stage which had remained semi-lit. The aura of expectation, of voracious
emotional appetite increased perceptibly. Sally shivered and folded her arms
across her breasts but Daffyd sensed that the created atmosphere irritated more
than distressed her.
She
shifted in her chair nervously when the waiter appeared with cups and the pot.
He served them disdainfully—he didn't make as much commission from the milder
brews—and hurried off, grimacing thanks for the carefully generous gratuity.
The
auditorium was almost full now and the conversational murmur impinged on
Daffyd's senses as the snarl of the unfed. Yes, the climate of the city was
very uncertain indeed. He could feel the tension building rapidly now, with so
many feeding it. He noticed the muscle boys spreading through the tables and
couches, and he worried harder. The psychology of a crowd was theoretically
understood but there was always that gap between theory and reality—that
dangerous gap which could be bridged by the most insignificant event—when crowd
exploded into Riot. Daffyd and Sally were far too familiar with the
"tone" of Riot to be very comfortable in a pregnant situation.
In
fact, Daffyd was leaning across the table to warn Sally that they might have to
leave when the lighting of the stage area altered and a girl stepped into the
center. She wore a white caftan-type unadorned robe and carried an old-fashioned
twelve-string guitar. It had no umbilical amplifier which surprised Daffyd as
much as the girl's regal poise and simple appearance.
A
camouflaged hand deposited a three-legged stool and the girl took her place on
it without a backward glance.
Daffyd
frowned at the darkness above the stage, wondering where the sound
amplification was hidden. She couldn't possibly hope to reach and hold this
crowd without electronic boosting of some kind.
Then
Daffyd saw the relieved and pleased smile on Sally's face.
The
girl settled herself, tossed back her mane of tawny hair and, without taking
any notice of the audience, began to play softly. There was no need for
mechanical amplification of that delicate sound. For the first note fell into a
voracious silence, the most effective conductor.
No—and
Daffyd sat up straight—every nerve in his body aware of a subtle, incredible
pulse that picked up the gentle melody and expanded it—telepathically!
And
this, too, was what Sally had hoped he'd feel, what she'd brought him here to
confirm. He saw the happy triumph in her eyes. The girl's voice, a warm lyric
soprano, intensified the pulse, "sounded" off the echo as she fed the
multitude with a tender ethnic admonition to love one another. And... everyone
did.
Daffyd
listened and "listened," stunned physically and emotionally by the
unusual experience: unusual even for a man whose life had been dedicated to the
concept of unusual mental powers. On an intellectual plane, he was incredulous.
He couldn't deduce how she was effecting this total rapport, this augmented
pulse. It was not mechanical, of that he was certain. Why this sensation of
"echo"?
The
girl would have to be a broadcasting empath: an intelligent empath, unlike poor
Harold Orley who hadn't any intellect at all. This young woman was consciously
choosing and directing the emotion she broadcast ... Wait! That was it ... she
was consciously directing the emotions ... at whom? Not the individual minds of
the listeners: they were responding but they could not account for the
"generation" of emotion that enveloped everyone. There had to be
sensitive minds to generate emotion like that and these people were
parapsychically dead. Yet she was manipulating them in some way, using some
method that was non-electrical and non-sonic.
The
girl continued with a more complicated tune from some early nineteenth-century
religious minority which had settled in the eastern United States. And the
"message" of the song was a soothing statement of acceptance.
She was
deliberately taking the audience out of the technocratic trap, transferring
them to less complex days, lulling them into a mood of even greater
receptivity. Nor was Daffyd immune to the charged atmosphere . . . except for
that part of his brain which could not perceive how she was effecting this
deft, mass control.
The
singer finished that song and plucked the strings idly, chording into a
different key. The third song, while no more intense than the first two, was a
rollicking happy ballad, a spirit-lifter, a work doer.
She was
preparing her audience, Daffyd realized, deftly and carefully. He began to
relax, or rather, the intellect which had been alerted, responded to the
beguiling charm of her performance.
Daffyd
was suddenly frightened. A deep pang, covered in a flash, overladen with worry
that was lyric-inspired. Only it wasn't. Sally had felt the pang, too, glancing
nervously around her. The rest of the audience didn't seem to catch alarm: they
were in the young singer's complete thrall, caught up in the illusion of
unpressured times and ways.
The
fear was the singer's and it was not part of her song, Daffyd concluded,
because he could detect no other influence, no newcomer in the hall, no change
of lighting or aura. Sally was concentrating on the girl, too.
Why
would she be frightened? She had the audience in the palm of her hand. She
could turn them in any direction she chose to: she could...
Her
song ended and, in a fluid movement, she rose, propped her guitar against the
stool and casually disappeared into the shadowy rear of the stage.
Sally
turned anxious eyes to Daffyd, and they shared the same knowledge. She's the
one who's frightened. She's leaving.
And
that's the most dangerous thing she could do, Daffyd "told" Sally.
No one
in the audience moved and Daffyd didn't dare. The lighting altered subtly,
brighter now, and people be-
gan to
shake off the deep entrancement, reaching for cigarettes or drinks, starting
soft conversation.
"They
don't know she's not coming back. When they do..."
Daffyd
signalled to Sally. It was imperative they leave: they couldn't risk the
psychic distortion of a riot and, once this crowd discovered that the singer
wasn't returning, their contentment would turn to sour savage resentment.
Caution governed Daffyd. They couldn't just leave. But they had to ...
He
reached across the table casually and deftly tipped the caffeine pot over.
"Of
all the stupid jerks," Sally cried, irritably, getting to her feet and
holding her flared skirt from her.
Daffyd
rose, too, with many apologies. They received mildly irritated glances from
nearby couples whose pleasant mood was disrupted. As Daffyd and Sally moved
toward the main door, Sally kept up a running diatribe as to her escort's
awkwardnesses and failings. They reached the sliding doors. The aura generated
by the singer was fainter in the lobby and the close knot of men by the box
office window interrupted their discussion to stare suspiciously at Daffyd and
Sally.
"I
can't sit around in this damp dress," Sally said in a nasal whine.
"It'll stain and you know it's only this week's issue."
"Hon-love,
it'll dry in a few moments. It was only..."
"You
would be clumsy and right now..."
"Let's
just stand outside a bit. It's warmer. You'll dry off and we won't miss any of
the singing."
"If
you make me miss any of Amalda's songs, I'll never, never forgive you..."
With
such drivel they got out the main entrance. But not before Daffyd experienced a
wash of such frightful lewd thoughts that he hastily closed off all awareness.
"Sally,
how many minorities did you notice represented there?"
"Too
many, in view of your memorandum this morning. Daffyd, I'm scared. And it's not
Amalda's fear this time!"
"I'm
calling Frank Gillings."
Sally
pulled from him. "I'll find the girl. She's got to have protection
..." "Can you find her?"
"I'm
not sure. But I've got to try. Once that crowd realizes she's left..."
Sally
turned to the right, toward the rear of the factory, slipping past the little
city crawlers until she was out of Daffyd's sight. He made for his copter and
opened the emergency channel to the Center.
Charlie
Moorfield was on duty and he instantly patched Daffyd through to the office of
Law Enforcement and Order as he was rousing the Center's riot control people.
If they could get enough telepaths to the site in time, they might dampen the
incipient riot before LEO needed to resort to the unpopular expedient of gas
control.
"Tell
Frank Gillings that Roznine is here, too," Daffyd told the officer on the
line.
"Roznine?
What'n hell would he be doing listening to a singer?" the man asked.
"If
you'd heard the effect this singer has on people, you'd understand."
The
officer swore, at a loss for other words. Daffyd wished that swearing were as
therapeutic for him. "Keep the band open, Charlie..." "Dave, you
can't stay there . . ." Charlie's voice reached Daffyd's ears even several
yards from the copter. Daffyd wished he'd be quiet. He had to concentrate on
"listening" for the girl. He could sense Sally's direction but he was
used to Sally's mind; he could have "found" her at a far greater
distance. But the singer was unknown: alarmingly unknown, Daffyd realized,
because he ought to be able to "find" her. He'd been in her presence,
in "touch" with her for over half an hour, long enough for him to
identify most minds and contact them again with-
in a
mile radius. She couldn't have got very far away in such a short time.
The
beat of heavy duty copters was audible now: coming in without lights and
sirens. Daffyd looked east, willing the Center's fast transports to get here
before the riot control squads. It was generally impossible to get enough
telepaths during the day to quell an imminent riot unless there'd been a precog
of trouble. But, of an evening, there was the entire Center's telepathic
population ... Now, if ...
He
heard the beginning of a subdued murmur from the building. The customers were
getting restless. He hoped they hadn't yet realized that the singer wasn't
taking a short break.
Someone
opened a section of the big main doors, stood framed in the rectangle of light
for a moment, peering out. Daffyd identified the stocky figure as Roznine's.
Suddenly the figure of the ethnic leader froze. He stepped out, into the night,
head up. The man's curses floated toward Daffyd as he slammed back into the
building. Daffyd hurried in search of Sally, wondering what Roznine would do
now he knew a LEO squad was on the way. Only . . . and Daffyd faltered midstride,
how could Roznine know, if he did, that the big copters were LEO. Cargo firms
used the same type. Yet op Owen knew with unarguable certainty that Roznine had
properly identified the aircraft.
Daffyd
came round the corner of the old factory just as the personnel hatch in the
huge rear door opened. He counted five of the muscle boys, each taking off in a
different direction. Then a sixth man, Roznine, whose harsh urgent voice
ordered them to find those effing copouts or they'd be subsistence livers for the
rest of their breathing days.
'Copouts.'
Plural, thought Daffyd. Who beside Amalda? No time now for speculation. Daffyd
sent a quick warning to Sally to leave off the search and get
back to
the copter. She was there when he returned, easily eluding the searching muscle
men who were as noisy mentally as they were physically.
"That
audience is losing patience fast," Sally said, staring at the ominous
black bulk of the building. She was hugging herself against shivers of fear.
Daffyd
looked eastward, saw the running lights of the slim Center transports.
"Not
long now."
But too
far away. Disappointment and whetted appetite rocketed to explosive heights.
All along their side of the factory, exits burst open as part of the audience
swarmed out, in futile search of the singer. Inside the furnishings were being
thrown about and broken, people were slugging and slugged, trampled and hurt as
uncertain tempers erupted.
Daffyd
wasted no time. He half-threw Sally into the copter, jammed in the rocket-lift,
warning Sally to hang on. The head LEO copter blared its summons before he
could turn on his distinctive identity lights. As it was, he only just got out
of stun range.
Once
clear of the busy altitudes, Daffyd hovered, calling an "abort" to the
Center transports. The situation had gone beyond their capabilities. He'd only
completed one circle before he saw that the LEO copters were laying gas. It was
all they could do with such a mob starting to rampage. Sally was weeping softly
as he veered eastwards toward the Center.
"I
wasn't honestly certain, Daffyd," Sally said, curled in a small contrite
ball on the suspended couch in his quarters. She kept examining her glass as if
the amber liqueur were fascinating. She'd the appearance of a small girl trying
to get out of a scold. Actually her public mind was wide open to Daffyd's,
permitting him a review of her initial impressions of the singer. "I mean,
while I
couldn't
think what else she might be, there was the possibility that it was all sonic
amplification. You know what a skilled operator can do."
"All
the more reason you should have reported it, Sally. That kind of manipulation
is why mechanical amplification is strictly licensed to reputable and reliable
technicians."
"And
not a clue about the girl?"
"Not
yet." The licensed owners of the Factory were among those drowsily
helpless inside the office in the lobby of the building. They'd be questioned,
of course, by Gillings's men. Perpetrators of riots could expect scant mercy
from the LEO office.
"We've
got to get to the girl first, Sally."
"If
only I'd told you sooner . . ." Sally was floating in chagrin.
"I
keep telling you, and every other member of my staff, I don't mind being
bothered with so called 'trivia.' Because it isn't always as trivial as you
might believe."
"I
know. I know. I simply wasn't thinking clearly." That was what she said,
but what Sally was thinking, also for him to see, was that she hadn't wanted to
disappoint him, or herself, in case her initial impression about the singer had
been wrong. The girl had been almost too good to be true.
"Was
she afraid of that crowd, Daffyd? It was three times the size of the one the
other night. In fact, the size alone put me off."
"You
first heard her..."
"Just
two days ago. I tried to get backstage to see her..." Sally shrugged her
failure.
"Muscle
boys?"
"No."
Sally was astonished. "Everyone else wanted to get next to her. I'd never
have had a chance to find out for sure with so much interference, much less
suggest she come to the Center."
Daffyd
began to stroll about, his arms crossed over his chest, his head down.
"We
both sensed her fright?"
Sally
nodded.
"We
are both agreed that she is a broadcasting em-path?"
Sally
nodded again, more emphatically. "Could she also receive? I mean, that
would account for that 'echo' phenomenon, wouldn't it? She throws the emotions
out and then magnifies them on retrieval?"
"That's
one explanation."
"Hmm,
but you don't subscribe to it with any enthusiasm."
Daffyd
grinned at Sally. "It doesn't fit all the circumstances. Besides, Roznine
used a plural . . . 'those effing copouts.'"
Sally's
eyes rounded with surprise. "She links. That would account for the
amplification and the echo." Daffyd nodded. "Then who's the other
empath, or em-paths?" Daffyd shrugged. "Doesn't she realize what she
is?"
"Probably
not. We shall have to inform her."
"And
how do you plan to do that?"
"I
think we ask for Frank Gillings's help ..."
"But
. . . but . . . she started the riot. You know what happens to riot
provokers."
"Yes,
but I also know that Frank wants all Talented people registered, trained and
controllable. So when he's had a chance to question the sleeping beauties .
.."
"We
can trace Cinderella and fit her out with glass slippers . . ." Sally
grinned saucily as she picked up the analogy.
"Before
Pegasus flies away with her."
"Pegasus?
He's a myth, not a fairy tale. That's not fair, Daffyd!"
"But
the analogy is most apt," and op Owen was grimly serious. "And we've
got to put a bridle on her Pegasus or she'll end up with singed wings."
Although
the LEO Commissioner and the Director of Eastern American Parapsychic Center
were on good working terms, the Commissioner avoided coming to the Center.
Respecting this whimsy, Daffyd called through to Gillings's office the next
morning, asking for an appointment and specifying his business as the Fact
riot.
"How
did you happen to be there, Dave?" Gillings greeted him, rising from his
chair as op Owen was ushered into his tower office.
Daffyd
spent a moment admiring the 360° view of the sprawling hazed metropolis.
"Tracking
a rather unique Talent."
"That
singer?" And Gillings swore when Daffyd nodded. "Do you know the toll
on that caper?"
"No,
but it's one helluva lot cheaper than it would have been if we hadn't alerted
riot control."
Gillings
frowned. "She shouldn't be allowed a public performer's license."
"I
wanted to find out if she had one."
Glaring,
Gillings icily banged at his desk comset and demanded to be put through to ID.
No license had been issued to anyone answering the description of the singer,
Amalda: nor had there been a license issued to the Fact for solo entertaining.
There were, however, specifications on record as to what mechanical
amplification was permitted the management of the Fact, the frequency of the
programming and the nights on which public gatherings could be held and the
maximum number of people permitted to gather. Last night's performance, it
transpired, was completely illegal. Gillings issued a summons for the owners,
brothers named Dick and Harry Ditts, who had told an entirely different tale
the previous evening when they had recovered from sleepy gas. Five minutes
later, Gillings was informed that neither Dick nor Harry Ditts could be located
at their residences on record.
"Have
they any known connection with Roznine?"
"Roznine?"
Gillings regarded Daffyd with a combina-
tion of
disgusted annoyance and startled concern which faded into deep reflection.
"You saw him there?"
"Yes,
he was at the Fact. When we were withdrawing from the scene of the imminent
riot, he was deep in conversation with several types in the lobby. Later he
spotted the LEO copters on their way in and made his way out. Funny he didn't
suggest to the Ditts brothers that they leave with him."
"Don't
be naive. Roznine looks after Roznine, first, last and always or I'd've had him
cooled long ago. But Sector K is far from his bailiwick . . ." Gillings
stared out across the city with narrowed eyes. "He's been getting too
damned powerful in the City and not just with the Slavs. A megalomaniac is what
he is and they operate with a curious ability to avoid minor disasters . . .
until they get overconfident. Roznine hasn't made that mistake ... yet..
."
"I
shouldn't wonder that there's some Talent in a megalomaniac, apart from his
madness."
"Talent?"
Gillings erupted as Daffyd had known he would. "Christ, that's all I need
is a Talented pan-ethnic leader. Goddammit, why don't you people get on the
ball and round up all these goddamn freaking Talents before they go haywire.
We've got enough problems keeping that . . ." and his blunt-fingered hand
described a circle at the panoramic metropolis outside the plexi-glass, ".
. . from exploding as it is without unnatural hazards like latent Talents
..."
".
. . Then help us find Amalda. She can be immensely useful..."
"She's
a riot provoker . . ." Gillings's eyes narrowed with a flash of
vindictiveness.
"Are
you going to help me, or hinder me, Frank? The girl is valuable to both of us
but not in your cooler as an RP. She's an intelligent broadcasting empath of
tremendous range and power. I don't think she realizes what she is ... or
didn't until possibly last night. Something frightened her out of her wits
halfway through her third
song.
She ran! I don't know what it was nor do I know exactly how she can broadcast
the way she does, but it's imperative that the Center find and protect
her."
Gillings's
eyebrows rose in ironic surprise. "You and Iselin were there. Why didn't
you get her then? What happened?"
"Among
other things, a riot. Some people shield automatically, Frank, and if you can't
trace the mind, you can't catch the body."
"All
right, all right," Gillings said, irritably waving aside Daffyd's mild
reproval. "But how come she doesn't know what she is? All right, all
right. I know the answer to that, too. All right, what do I do?"
"I
want a tracer on any young singer of her description applying for a performer's
license anywhere in the country. And I want to know where she has sung, where
she trained, where she came from. She's gone to cover and she won't find easy.
In the first place, she's terrified of whatever hit her last night. And secondly,
she'll have a good idea what happened when the audience found out she wasn't
going to sing again. She has two very good reasons for being scarce. I also
don't want her frightened out of her wits so let me handle the actual search
with my people. I'll get my propaganda team to alter some of the public info
broadcasts subliminally. We might get her to seek us out spontaneously which
would be preferable," Daffyd added, rising.
"Okay,
you handle it but I want that girl found and trained or whatever it is you do
with them. And quick. I'll shunt the report on her to your computer. Shouldn't
take long to trace her."
It took
two days to trace the girl known as Amalda. And the print-out had many gaps.
She'd
been born and reared in a small Appalachian commune: educated to her sixteenth
year in the County School system which she quit to "travel" ... a not
un-
common
pattern for an undirected or unmotivated youngster. There was no record of
formal music instruction but music was a feature in her environment: no
official record of her for several years until she took work in a Florida food
control complex. Two applications for performer's license in Florida were
denied by the Audition Board there. The third application was provisionally
granted and lapsed without formal request for an extension, but several short
term engagements were on record for her as an unamplified, string-instrumented
folk singer. A new application as apprentice, non-singer, had been filed in
Washington, D. C. four months before: one engagement was listed without a
termination date. Then Daffyd had a check made on the play in which she had
appeared. Amalda, who had started as a walk-on, had been abruptly promoted to
an important supporting role. The play was scheduled for a metropolitan opening
in three weeks.
Although
Daffyd had only a superficial acquaintance with the mechanics of the Performing
Arts, there were several glaring contradictions in this report. And no
explanation for Amalda's sudden appearance as a self-accompanied soloist in a
minority entertainment hall of dubious reputation.
In the
meantime, he and Sally worked with the propaganda department to include in the
public information broadcasts a subliminal appeal for someone in Amalda's
situation. Daffyd also got in touch with the play's producer.
"I've
had enough trouble with that flitting bird," Norman Kabilov told op Owen.
"If she does show up, I'll tell her straight: she gets no more contracts
and she shouldn't ever hope to get a PP license approved. Not if I have any
connection in the PA."
"What
kind of trouble did you have with Amalda?" Daffyd asked, injecting
placatory thoughts at the irritated little man.
"Troubles,
plural, not trouble singular," and Norman Kabilov glowered at op Owen.
Daffyd knew the man was considerably
perplexed by the Center's interest in his ex-actress.
"First,
she latches on to my stage manager, Red Vaden . . . good man, Vaden. Solid.
Dependable. Only this little twit has him hopping to her tune like he'd never
tried to brush off a stage-struck tail before. Red doesn't ask many favors so
when he wants this bird in the cast ... so when the show travels, he's not
lacking what he's been having regular ... I say, yes. What harm? Suddenly I got
Red begging me to give her an audition for one of the secondary leads. I
already got a good PA picked out for the part . . ." Kabilov's expression
told Daffyd that his choice had been personal rather than professional.
"... but I gotta keep 'em happy so I audition the girl." The little
producer frowned now, his thoughts vivid to Daffyd. The man had been surprised
out of boredom at the quality of the audition and immediately signed Amalda for
the role, despite the fact that he'd known he'd be in for a heavy tune with the
disappointed candidate. "Mind you, it wasn't that great a part until that
kid reads it." Another headshake of perplexity. "I dunno how she did
it because she sure had no theatre arts credits but I couldn't not give her the
part. And then the author comes to rehearsal and hell, he's rewriting the part
to give her more. I damn near have a jeopardy action from Carla Jacobs who's
the name in the play. Only Red goes to work on her and she quiets down like a
lily. And you gotta believe that Jacobs don't handle that easy. She's pushing fifty,
y'see, and any new bird is a threat. Funny thing," and Kabilov stared off
above Daffyd's head, his mind taking up and discarding a hundred different
glimpses of Carla Jacobs in high tantrum, Carla Jacobs soothed and very few
snatches of Amalda. The man was unconsciously censoring those recollections.
"Once La Jacobs got to working with the kid, things were okay. Wanta see
the reviews we got?"
Daffyd
hastily assented but he was given no chance to do more than glance at the
commendatory headlines in the fasc sheets.
"As
long as we were in Washington, it was okay. But the minute we got to Jerhattan,
troubles! La Jacobs storms in here with her lawyers and her current man and she
won't play with that creature anymore. In fact, she gets so absolutely violent
we gotta trank her. Now I can't lose La Jacobs or I lose the theatre and the
play since that's the contract. So I tell Red to find his bird another nest. I
can't afford trouble. And they both walk!" He was indignant. "Just
like that. He walks. A guy I'd sworn was 100% dependable walks out of the show
two weeks before opening. On account of a scrawny bird!"
If
Norman Kabilov looked the picture of outraged innocence, he "sounded"
like a man reprieved from an unknown ordeal. However, he did have publicity
shots of Amalda and Red Vaden, which he appeared relieved to give Daffyd: as if
by getting rid of everything reminding him of this unsettling episode he could
erase it from his memory.
Daffyd
op Owen had his best finders scan the pictures, he sent copies to the LEO
office and, on an off-chance, gave a final print to his best precog.
"You
better find that girl," Gillings told op Owen, "or I'll find her and
make her answer—officially—for that riot."
"Frank,
don't provoke another Maggie O."
Though
the comset was not color, Daffyd was certain that Gillings' face changed shade.
"We're
doing all we can," he went on soothingly, "to find her but there's no
way of forcing her to come to us."
Gillings
growled something dire as he broke the connection.
There
were days when Gillings was not Daffyd's only cross. He and Sally had spent
most of the morning trying
to
figure out a way to attract Amalda to them. Lester Welch walked in, listened a
few minutes and then snorted in disgust.
"Why
don't you just find out where this Red Vaden lives? If he was so gone on the
girl he'd leave a successful show, he's probably tied up tight with her. And if
he's at leisure," and Lester grinned as he used the performing arts'
euphemism, "he's surely checked into the PA Casting Agency."
Op Owen
closed his eyes briefly before he thanked Lester with a good grace.
"I'm
not sure what we'd ever do without your common sense, Les."
"Oh,
someone else'd tell you your nose is on your face." And Les left.
"This
is one time I wish I were a kinetic," Daffyd said with a wistful sigh,
thinking all kinds of disasters, of a minor sort, to befall the dour New
Englander on his way down the aisle to his own office. Then he caught Sally
grinning at him, her eyes sparkling. "And if you repeat any of what I was
thinking..."
She
composed her face into solemnity, raising one hand. "Dai, you know I can't
'path that accurately." But in her mind was a vivid picture of Lester
stuffed into one of his wastepaper baskets.
Daffyd
placed a call to the Casting Agency. Bruce Vaden had reported his availability
and a new address. However, the Agency informed him, the address was naturally
restricted. Daffyd explained who he was and that he urgently needed to get in
touch with Vaden and was informed that Performing Artist Vaden would be
contacted and would return his call if he were interested.
"
'If he were interested' indeed," Daffyd repeated, breaking the connection
with uncharacteristic irritability.
"Shall
we think Lesterish, and perhaps drop a word in the omnipotent ear of our local
lion?" asked Sally.
Her
suggestion elicited the needed address in five minutes and in less than half an
hour, they were on their
way by
copter to an isolated area of the Coast. The small sea-silvered cottage was
tightly locked and obviously untenanted. Rather depressed, Sally and Daffyd
returned to the Center. Lester met them at the roof stairs.
"You're
covered with canary feathers," said Sally.
"I
thought you couldn't read my mind," Lester replied, startled.
"With
your expression I don't need to."
But
Sally hesitated at the door of Daffyd's office. Rather more aggravated with
circumstance than Sally, Daffyd took her firmly by the arm and pushed her into
the room. He was instantly overwhelmed by several devastating impressions:
contact with Sally informing him that her emotions were highly unstable; there
were intense love-hate auras swirling in the room and among them the sure
knowledge that the chestnut-haired girl seated facing the door was a powerful
and violently agitated empath; that the red-bearded man standing by the window
was linked to her in a desperate, despairing bond.
"I'm
Daffyd op Owen," he said, "and this is Sally Iselin, head of our
Clinic Recruiting Team. We've been looking for you." Daffyd poured out
waves of sympathy/ reassurance/overt love and respect.
"We
found you," replied the man. "I'm Brace Vaden."
"We
tried to locate you at the Fact last night," Daffyd said, turning to
Amalda. His second impression was that the girl was about to implode.
At that
point, Sally gasped and made a movement towards Amalda as the impact of
fear/confusion/hatred/ love/horror/revulsion/affection lapped over the two
Talents.
"That's
just a sample of what I can do." Despite a southern softness, the girl's
voice grated in their ears and was echoed by an intense mental shout that
caused both Daffyd and Sally to shake their heads. "I don't want this. It
doesn't matter any more if Red is in or out of the room. It works anywhere
now." She was drenched
in
bitterness, but there was pity as well as satisfaction to be read from her
glance as she "watched Sally beginning to shake with reaction.
Daffyd
curtly gestured Sally from the room. She resisted until he reinforced the order
mentally, telling her to get Jerry Frames over here on the double. He duly
noted that she was rebellious and not bothering to hide the fact in her public
mind or her expression. Daffyd winced slightly as Sally slammed the door behind
her.
"You're
an empath," Daffyd told Amalda, trying to reach through her broadcast to
soothe her stampeding emotions.
"I
don't care what I am. I want you to stop it. Now!"
"I
can't stop it, my dear," he said in his kindest voice, but he had a vision
of a bridleless winged horse bolting across the heavens.
Amalda
rose, in a single fluid movement, her eyes blazing. "Then I will!"
Her words rose to the edge of a scream as she launched herself at the window.
Daffyd moved to intercept her, physically and mentally, but not as swiftly as
Red Vaden. Not that she could have achieved her end, since the window was
unbreakable. So she hit the plastic hard and crumpled into the arms of the
redhead, sobbing hysterically and broadcasting such conflicting and powerful
emotions that, out of pity, Daffyd reached for the trank gun in his desk and
shot her.
There
was absolute silence on every level in the room as the two men stared down at
the limp figure in Vaden's arms.
"I
suppose that was necessary," the man said in a bleak voice as he swung her
up in his arms.
Daffyd
could read the relief in the man's mind which had been bruised by confusion,
fear and an unquestioning devotion to the girl. Op Owen gestured towards the
couch.
"All
right, op Owen, what now?" Vaden asked after he had arranged Amalda gently
in a comfortable position. The man's eyes were a cold, troubled blue.
Daffyd
returned the gaze, probing deftly and finding in Vaden's outer thoughts that
their visit here had been his suggestion, a last possibility of assistance,
since Amalda had been determined to end her Talent even if it meant taking her
life.
"First
we have the Center's doctor prescribe sedation," and Daffyd nodded towards
the painfully thin arm of the unconscious girl, "and a decent diet."
Vaden
snorted as if practical advice was the last thing he'd expected from op Owen
but he took the chair Daffyd indicated to him.
"Then
the Center teaches her to control this Talent."
"Talent?"
Vaden exploded. "Talent? It's an effing curse! After the other night,
she's scared to go out of the house. She'll never perform again ... She won't
even ..." and he clenched his teeth over what he'd been about to add but
not before the thought, "audible" to Daffyd, made him pity the two
more.
"Any
Talent is a two-edged sword, Vaden," op Owen said, swinging his chair a
little, a soothing motion.
"What
kind of a freak is she?"
"She's
by no means a freak," Daffyd answered in rather severe tones. "She's
a broadcasting telempath . . ."
"And
I'm the booster station?"
"I
think that would be a good analogy."
"Look,
op Owen, I've read a good bit about you Talents and nothing was said about what
Amalda does..."
"Quite
likely. We're just beginning to appreciate the mutations possible in the
parapsychic. We have only one true telempath here. He unfortunately has no more
mind than a rabbit and he only receives. Amalda can apparently transmit exactly
what she chooses. I gather the phenomenon only began when she met you?"
On the
top of Vaden's mind was the actual first meeting: a sort of dazed comprehension
that they were "meant for each other." Their first love-making had
been a revelation to the blase, sex-wearied Vaden and
each succeeding day had strengthened their interdependence.
"She
was down and out," Vaden said aloud in an expressionless voice. What he
wasn't saying was vividly and pictorially flashing across his mind, elaborating
with every shade of the emotional spectrum a dry recital of fact. "Thank
God it was me she approached . . ." and beyond the flashes of memories,
Daffyd saw that Vaden had never allowed himself the luxury of loving or caring
for anyone for fear of being hurt and used. In a transient profession,
constantly besieged by stage-struck youngsters who thought a PA license was
"all" they needed to achieve fame, he had been invulnerable to
physical charms and ordinary ploys. But he had absolutely no defense against
the impact of Amalda's mind in his. Now he ran nervous fingers through his
crisp red hair. "We went everywhere."
He'd been haunted with the fear that she'd
leave him or be taken from
him. "Even to rehearsal. Then the girl who was to play
Charmian was late so I asked Amalda to fill in and read it 'til she came. I've
never heard a better first reading. She even lost every trace of her regional
accent and became the hard-voiced trollop. We all loathed her. It was such a
total characterization! I've never seen such a thing in all the years I've been
a PA. I'd expect such expertise from someone like Mathes or Crusada, but a
novice? An ex-canary?" Vaden looked toward the unconscious girl and gave a
sort of incredulous shrug. "She was so pleased to think she did have
ability. She'd tried often enough to qualify as a vocalist." Vaden made an
exasperated noise in his throat. "The first time she sang for me I
couldn't credit that she'd been refused a license." He turned back to
Daffyd. "It just didn't make sense."
"I'd
hazard that you were the missing factor."
"A
modern Svengali?" Vaden was bitter.
"Not
exactly. But the brain generates electrical currents. And in the same way that
a receiver must be
tuned
to a certain wave-length to get a message broadcast on that same wave-length,
minds must be broadcasting on the same frequency. Yours and Amalda's are. Were
either of you ever parapsychically tested?"
"Not
that I know of."
"Well,
we can sort out the pure mechanics later during testing but there is one other
pressing question I must ask."
Vaden
did have Talent, whether it had blossomed through contact with Amalda or not
was immaterial, for he instantly perceived what was on Daffyd's mind and
stiffened. Daffyd continued, feeling it wiser not to let Vaden realize that he
was in the presence of a strong telepath ... at least not yet.
"Granted
you serve in the capacity of an amplifier for whatever mood Amalda creates,
what happened the other night at the Fact? What terrified her so that she fled
from what obviously was a smash-success? She had that audience in the palm of
her hand."
An expression
akin to terror crossed Vaden's face, ruthlessly suppressed in a second.
"You
were in the audience?" Vaden asked, temporizing.
"Yes,
Sally Iselin had heard Amalda two nights before and wanted me to confirm her
suspicion that Amalda was a high-gain empathist. What scared Amalda off that
stage? And sent both of you into hiding?"
There
was nothing helpful in Vaden's mind except a repetition of what Daffyd and
Sally had felt in Amalda's projection. Instead, Vaden's thoughts became
despairing.
"That's
why you've got to help us, op Owen. Turn Amalda off!"
Vaden
didn't attempt to disguise his fear now. And he didn't strike op Owen as easily
frightened. He was tough, able to take care of himself from the look of his
bearlike build. And had taken care of himself, to judge by the scars on his
knuckles and face.
"Fortunately,
no one can turn Amalda off. Nor do I yet see the necessity." Only a
nebulous but overwhelming fear in both Vaden and Amalda.
"You'd
better see," Vaden cried, leaning urgently toward op Owen. His eyes were
blazing with anger, fear and a sense of impotence which would be more
frightening and humiliating to a man of Vaden's temperament. "You'd better
see that it's crushing Amalda to the point where she was willing to commit suicide
rather than live with what she's become!"
"You
haven't told me what frightened her and what, if I may speak candidly, is
bothering you as well."
Vaden
got a grip on his fear and anger. "There was someone else in that
audience," he said in a harsh controlled voice, "who suddenly linked
up with us. Someone who was trying to dominate. Who was determined to control
what Amalda can do. She got the brunt of it, of course, then I caught it."
Op Owen
was certain then, with an awful instinct, that Roznine was the third person.
And the ramifications of that premise were decidedly unsettling. He managed to
smile reassuringly at Brace Vaden. He swung his chair idly from side to side
with counterfeit unconcern. He had lost Solange Boshe but he wouldn't lose
Amalda . . . and Vaden... and Roznine.
"That's
very interesting," he told Vaden. "Does Amalda have any idea of the
man's identity?"
"How
could she?" Red Vaden asked scornfully. He was making a notable effort to
cover his inner perturbations. He couldn't bear even the notion of sharing
Amalda with anyone. "The minute she realized what was happening, how
strong the guy was, and what he wanted her to do, she made as if she was taking
a short break. And told me to follow. But she won't ever sing again. You don't
know what it does to you ..."
"I
probably more than any man," Daffyd said with a slight smile.
Vaden
discredited the statement with a cutting sweep of his hand.
"You've
got to understand that Amalda must be turned off."
There
was an edge in his voice now: he was hitting an emotional high, too. Daffyd
reached surreptitiously for the trank gun.
"Don't
you dare!" Vaden moved with surprising speed and grabbed op Owen's hand.
"I
thought you'd understand, op Owen. Whoever that guy is is double
dangerous!"
"You'll
have every bit of protection the Center and every other Center in the world can
offer you, Vaden," Daffyd replied, allowing his voice to take on strength
without volume. "Which is not inconsiderable, I assure you. What you don't
understand, Vaden, is that Amalda's main problem is simply lack of control of
her rather breath-taking ability."
"You
don't understand." Vaden was desperate. "She can control masses of
people. Those subbies in the Fact ... she could have made them do anything.
That's what's terrifying her. And me. And that other freaked-out mind . . . he
wanted to use her to control that kind of a dangerous mob. God, man, I know
what riot is. I've seen them. I've been caught in them. I know what happens.
She could cause one. She even started one by not being there. She could incite
the entire goddamned Jerhattan complex..."
"How?"
asked Daffyd blandly.
"By
... by ... doing what that mind wanted her to do the other night."
"But,"
and Daffyd matched Red Vaden's urgency with his own, "she didn't! And she
couldn't! And nothing on this world, not even some freaked-out mind with a
megalomaniacal bent could make her. And once she's learned to control this . .
. winged horse of hers, I think you'll all find this not so cursed a
Talent."
"I
don't believe you."
"How
old is Amalda?"
"What?
What has that got to do?"
"How
old?"
"She's
twenty-two...."
"Twenty-two.
And rather young for twenty-two, I should imagine. That's still a tender
age." Daffyd could've wished for some of Amalda's empathic strength but he
was getting through to Vaden's basic reasonableness. "And she has become
emotionally involved with you . . . No offense, please, Mr. Vaden. From a
rather humdrum frustrating existence, she has erupted onto the stage, into
prominence . . . Even a mature personality could be dazzled. Then she is thrown
into a highly charged situation—the concert at the Fact—it was unnerving for me
as an observer, and I'm well in command of my emotional responses. She is frightened
and runs! For which I don't blame her at all. In short, Amalda has been
operating on high for some time. We are still frail masters of our powers, Mr.
Vaden. And that receiver/broadcaster unit which is Amalda is overcharged.
"No,
Mr. Vaden, we can't turn her off. We don't want to. But we can teach her how to
channel her Talent, how to discipline it so it won't run away with her as it
has just done. We can also show you how to help her put on the brakes. Oh, yes,
you can apply what, to all intents and purposes, are circuit breakers. She will
need your strength and aggression, Mr. Vaden. In fact, and this is between us,
Amalda is not as important as both of you. So I will consider you a team,
because that's what you are."
"Then
you can help?" asked Vaden. He didn't quite believe op Owen but the aura
of belligerent desperation was fading.
"I
just said so."
"No,"
and Vaden shook his head angrily as if he'd thought Daffyd would
"know" his exact referents.
"Emotion
is as much a tool as a pen or a pneumatic drill..."
Vaden
stared at him, and then unexpectedly chuckled. "And Amalda's been swinging
the drill?"
Inwardly
op Owen cheered. Thank God the man had a sense of humor.
"Exactly.
Amalda has all the finesse of a tyro. If you had been the focus instead of this
rather impressionable and previously frustrated young woman, I think matters
might have progressed more circumspectly. As it was..."
"I
don't think Amalda's going to believe you, op Owen," Vaden said, looking
sadly down at the unconscious girl.
"I
don't think she'll have any alternative," Daffyd replied severely. Vaden
frowned, his eyes narrowing, but op Owen returned the look, adding a mental
reinforcement. "She is exhausted from the look of her, which is what
happens when you run an engine on full power for any length of time. We'll
sedate her sufficiently to let her body and mind rest. And we'll keep her
sedated until she begins to realize that she cannot control everything around
her with the grip of a tyrant ... for that seems to be her main fear. Rather
commendable, actually."
"And?"
Vaden said in a flat, no-argument voice.
"And,
in the meantime, you will have to learn how to aid her. You've been more or
less passive. Shall we say," and Daffyd smiled slightly as he bowed to
Vaden, "you are both engaged for a long-term contract with no
options."
The
door burst open to admit Jerry Frames, the Center's physician and Sally Iselin,
who glared her way back into the office. Daffyd smiled as he stepped aside to
let them through to Amalda.
"What
took you so long?" he asked Sally.
"What
d'you think I am? A lousy pop Talent?"
"She's
able to cover completely now, Daffyd," Sally said with understandable
pride.
They
were watching through the one-way mirror as Amalda fed Harold Orley. The
witless empath was neatly eating, with appetite, and often a small smile of
pleasure on his child-like features.
"Never
thought we'd use Harold as an instructor," said op Owen. Sally grinned at
him, her eyes sparkling. "Harold's a useful old tool."
Daffyd
thought fleetingly of Solange Boshe.
"Don't,
Dai!" Sally's one word was reinforced by her mental command behind which
Daffyd sensed sympathy, pity and, oddly enough, annoyance.
"She's
off all tranks now?" he asked, grateful to her.
"Heavens
yes. She's got to concentrate on Harold, you know."
"Then
let's start them moving about outside."
"I
would if I were you. The Red Bear's about to go stir crazy."
"Red
Bear?"
Sally
wrinkled her nose. "That's what I call Vaden."
"Then
Amalda's Goldilocks?"
"Good
heavens, no. She's Cinderella, remember?"
"Cinderella
and the One Bear?"
"Cinderella,
the One Bear and... the Wolf!"
Daffyd
frowned. "I thought I was a better therapist than that."
"Oh,
it's just a back-of-the-mind worry. She's not going to trust herself until she
does meet and vanquish the Wolf. And then we can all live happily ever
after."
There
was a tinge of bitterness in Sally's bright voice that made Daffyd look at her
closely. He was tempted to probe but that wasn't ethical, particularly since
Sally would be instantly aware of the intrusion. So he observed Amalda for a
few more moments before leaving the Clinic.
In the
month Amalda had been at the Center, the over-thin, intense girl-child had been
replaced by a still slender but composed young woman. Her fears had slow-
ly been
eased by Daffyd's adroit therapy and by her own ability to discipline her
emotions, to channel the vital energies deftly.
The
first sessions with Harold Orley had been conducted with Amalda fairly well
sedated. The girl had been revolted by Harold's witlessness. There could have
been no clearer mirror for her reaction. Pity for the moronic empath had been
quickly suppressed because Harold would disconcertingly burst into tears. At
first Amalda had rebelled at being forced to work with Harold but she could not
refute the fact that he would react instantly to her emotions and until she
could control them in his presence, she couldn't expect to be able to control
them sufficiently in public.
In the
first days at the Center, she had also demanded, even under heavy sedation, to
be lobotomized: an operation which Amalda erroneously supposed would suppress
her gratuitous Talent. Then she met Harold and realized that the psionic
portion of her brain would not be excised by such an operation. Step Two in
Amalda's rehabilitation was her introduction to the Center's star young Talent,
two-year old Dorotea Horvath. It didn't take Amalda long to recognize the
lesson which, was thus demonstrated to her.
Small
Dorotea was playing contentedly with six-sided blocks. When they tumbled, her
fury exploded ... to be checked, unconsciously but firmly, by her mother. The
young telepath's thoughts were so loud and clear that Amalda couldn't fail to
recognize the analogy.
"So
I discovered a bright new toy in my mind and it won't play with me, is that
it?"
"You
have to learn to balance the toy just as Dorotea does ..." Daffyd said
gently.
"So
they won't all fall down and go boom?"
"With
you underneath," added Sally. "Like the night at the Fact."
Despite
sedation, Amalda paled and shuddered.
"He
can't find me, can he?"
"Not
here, behind shielded walls, my dear," Daffyd reassured her.
Once
Amalda could control her emotions, Vaden began to take part in the exercises.
It was during these sessions that the phenomenon of the second Fact concert was
harnessed. Amalda, with Red, could dominate the emotional atmosphere of any
large room, could project, even to the minds of sensitives, any emotion she
chose. But the force that Daffyd and Sally had felt at the Fact was absent.
"The
team right now is limited," Daffyd said to Sally, somewhat ruefully.
"Limited?"
Sally was surprised.
"Yes.
As long as there are no dark emotions being counter-broadcast, she can project
what she wants of the lighter ones. But I was rather hoping that she and Vaden
would be strong enough together to counteract..."
"An
incipient riot?"
"Yes,"
and Daffyd leaned forward eagerly. "That would placate Frank Gillings and
wipe out that RP he's still got against her. And think what it would mean in
riot control techniques: two people instead of twenty sensitives, if we have
'em available when we need 'em, or instead of the gas."
"Well,
so that's what you've had in mind."
"As
it is, I think we'll let them operate as a team in those gatherings that tend
to develop brawls: conventions, fairs, industrial shows."
"And
what about the Wolf?"
"Ah,
yes, but you see, I want him to come out of the woods.
"And
Amalda?" Sally "sounded" furious with him.
"Which
would you wager on? A Wolf or a Bear?"
Daffyd
op Owen was by no means as callous of Amalda's safety as Sally might think, for
he'd circulated
a
warning to all sensitives for any inquiry about Amalda or Brace Vaden and any
unusual activity on Roznine's part. Ted Lewis, the chief police Talent, gave
them their first hint of interest. A well-known and respected Performer's Agent
who just happened to be Polish, asked for assistance from Central Casting to
find a missing PA, Brace 'Red' Vaden who was reportedly employed but who had
obviously not appeared with any working company.
"Now
that could be legit," Ted Lewis told Daffyd. "The guy really is
forming up a variety show for the Borscht circuit but for that he doesn't need
a stage director with Vaden's rating."
"What
about an unamplified folk singer?"
Ted
Lewis shook his head. "Now Roznine may have found out that Amalda is
Vaden's bird but it's also fairly common knowledge that Gillings is still after
the folk-singer who started the riot at the Fact Stupid Roznine isn't. Devious,
yes."
It
suited Daffyd that Gillings had not yet dropped that charge, for while Amalda
was recovering herself and learning to control her abilities, the charge would
provide her with a certain protection.
What
did puzzle Daffyd was what Roznine intended doing with Amalda if, as, and when,
he got possession of her. To be sure, the public was informed, in broad terms,
about the capabilities of the Talented but nothing had ever been released about
the more bizarre possibilities of psionic powers. Certainly nothing related to
Amalda's ability for the very good reason that until Amalda had met Bruce
Vaden, such a Talent couldn't even have been conjectured as possible.
Therefore, what could Roznine's active imagination have suggested to him? Did
he realize that he, Roznine, was Talented? Since he had domination over his
ethnic group, did he plan to dominate the entire City through Amalda?
"Vsevolod
Roznine is no man's fool, boss," Ted Lewis was saying to Daffyd's further
agitation. "He's got every
single
employment and patronage plum available for his Slavs. Oh, all very legal; a
bit dicey if you're looking at it from some other ethnic corner, but legal. And
he's fast moving out of his own bailiwick. He's been getting cooperation where
no Pan-Slav has ever got it before. How, why, what he does, we don't know. He
may use a common garden variety of blackmail or he may even have a genuine
Talent. Though Gillings'll flip if he's got to deal with a Talented ethnic
leader!"
"There
could be worse things," Daffyd said, though obviously Ted Lewis wouldn't
agree. "Have you got the LEO precogs sensitive to both Roznine and
Amalda?"
Ted
Lewis shot his superior a disgusted look. "They're all sleeping on papered
pillows."
"And?"
"Boss,
you know you can't force a valid precog."
"No
Incidents at all?"
"Nary
a one. Only vague feelings of uneasiness." He was evidently repeating a
frequent reply, which satisfied him no more than it did Daffyd.
"Keep
an open mind on Roznine. And don't let Gillings know we suspect Roznine is
Talented. I'm going to start using Amalda and Vaden as a team. Sooner or later
Roznine will discover her again."
"You
want that?"
"Very
much." And in Daffyd's mind, as he left Ted Lewis, was the memory of
Solange Boshe's wild demented face before she teleported through a steel door
in the parking building.
Gillings
was delighted to use Amalda and Bruce Vaden as riot prevention. He even offered
to take the charge off the books but Daffyd suggested that it remain a while
longer. The team was instantly assigned to a round of rallies, meetings,
conferences, and conventions. Such gatherings were encouraged. to divert a
population with too much unoccupied time but any one of them might
explode
into a riot, given the proper stimuli. Decibel alarms were legally required in
every meeting hall, in-chiding churches, but clever agitators could and had
sabotaged them so that the suppressant gases were not released when the
"noise" level reached the sharp pitch of incipient riot. The
professional agitators had also learned how to modulate their voices below the
danger level, carefully goading their victims into the spontaneous combustion
which neither gas nor water jets could control. And which no precog could be
expected to accurately predict until too late for effective action.
Fortuitously,
as Amalda learned to control herself, she learned to read Harold with an
accuracy and perception that surpassed Sally's. Harold could serve with the
team, Daffyd decided, as a gauge for the general atmosphere of a group and as,
in an emergency, a body guard for Amalda. (You learned things, even from
disasters, Daffyd told himself positively.) Partnered with the empath, Amalda
would sit in the center of an audience or circulate through a crowd. Vaden
would be on the periphery, ready to "broadcast" if it became
necessary. They could also be expected to keep up a running projection of whatever
aura the LEO authorities or the sponsors of the occasion requested, if this
were not a commercial affair. Subliminal pressures for mercantile purposes
were, of course, an illegal and unethical use of Talent.
The
team was extraordinarily successful in unexpected ways. The Motorboat show had
the lowest incidence of petty pilfering in its history: the Home Show reported
no lost children and a remarkably quiet, well-behaved quota of siblings
following their parents through the exhibits. Two conventions, noted for the
inebriation of their members, had their damage deposits reduced as a result of
genial but undestructive behavior.
And
Amalda began to gam confidence to the point where Sally remarked that even
Bruce Vaden had been seen to smile occasionally.
I was surely right about the menu today,
Amalda thought as the waiter plunked down the mock chicken, lumpy reconstituted
potatoes and shrivelled snap beans. Oh, well, all part of Life's Rich Pageant,
she added and started broadcasting recklessly intense delicious taste feelings.
Harold began to beam beside her, attacking his food with relish.
She
glanced casually around at her table mates, as pompous a crew of convention
goers as she'd ever seen and she was now an authority. (Did they always use the
same "masks" at conventions? Or could it be the same group of people
as the Plastic Container Manufacturers last week, and the Fabric Finishers
Association on Tuesday-week?) They responded to her prompting as rapidly as
Harold, all grunting with pleasure as they ate their cardboard food. Amalda
sighed. Too bad she and Brace couldn't. get a kick-back from the catering staff
for "improving" their food beyond the call of duty.
Now
there I go again, she thought, but it does seem that the Talented were letting
an awful good thing go the way of Duty and Honor.
She was
rather pleased with her broadcasting today. She had begun to bother with such
fine points in their assignments, more to amuse herself at first—like stopping
all those kids from whining at the Boat Fair. But it had sounded like home, all
her brothers and sisters whining at once, before they'd tied Ma off. If she
never heard another child whine it would be soon enough. And making food at
least "seem" tasty was in defense of her poor abused digestion. According
to specifications, all the nutrients and vitamins were in the food and would be
absorbed by her system. But she'd come to prefer "tasting" things. It
made these convention luncheons bearable. What a way to earn a living!
And
yet, Amalda reluctantly admitted, she didn't dislike it. If only ... She
wouldn't think about that. It'd ruin her appetite. After all, now she'd got the
hang of this trick mind of hers, she could make whole bunches
of
people feel what she wanted them to. When the time came, she could control him,
too. Bruce was never far from her. She smiled, the warmth of his infinite love
a presence to counteract any nibble of fear. Sometimes when Bruce made love to
her, she wanted to embrace the whole world with its beauty, but that sort of
broadcasting wasn't even moral: that was private between her and Bruce and . .
. He'd thought things at her that night . . . Things she didn't even dare to
think about . . . Harold was getting restless. She curbed her reminiscences.
And
then, the jab. So sharp she gasped, so hard it was physical yet the prod was in
her mind . . . and all too familiar. He was here.
Harold
whimpered, empathizing with her. She hastily damped down her shock of fearful
surprise. He was as abruptly gone from her mind. She shivered, unable to
suppress the lingering sense of revulsion that that recognition touch evoked in
her. She overcame the feeling, smiling inanely around at her table mates. She
patted Harold soothingly on the arm. He grinned, restored to equilibrium. Good,
she must keep this to herself.
But she
couldn't keep from glancing around for Bruce: he was at table 4, near the
dignitaries. He glanced up, nodded at her, and was then required to make some
answer to his partner, a female who simpered up at him.
Sometimes,
Amalda thought, Red has the harder role to play.
Part of
her mind wanted to search for him, but her strongest desire was never to be
touched by him again, ever. She scanned the room now, certain she'd be able to
locate his evil self. She'd certainly studied his IDs long enough to spot him
physically anywhere. Waiters were coming and going from the kitchens. He wasn't
one of them. He wouldn't be one of the conventioneers. She'd've identified him
long before now. She opened her mind, making it, as Dave had suggested, like
the lens of a
camera,
slowly widening. She didn't really want to: too much of an appalling and
revolting nature seeped in. She wondered how Dave, who was a full telepath and
"heard" actual thoughts, not just emotions as she did, could bear it.
She wondered how much he had "conditioned" her mind to accept her
Talent. She knew he had: he'd told her so. She didn't mind . . . probably Dave
had done that, too. But he was so kind. Now if only he'd...
No, she
told herself sternly, these thoughts you may not have. Sally loves Daffyd op
Owen. She grimaced. For a perceptive Talent, Dave could be awfully dense. For
the Lord's sake, you didn't even have to be a telepath to see Sally Iselin was
madly in love with Mm. Or maybe Dave knew and couldn't do anything about it?
Couldn't someone condition Dave? Hmmm. Maybe I'll get to work on it. No, and
Amalda gave her head a little regretful shake, that would be tampering and
that's not ethical.
She
sighed. Being a Talent imposed certain rules and regulations which absolutely
couldn't be broken. In the first place, you got found out too fast. Not much of
a bridle on that winged horse Dave's always talking about but it kept you from
falling off... morally...
The
waiter was bending over her. Amalda leaned toward Harold to permit the waiter
to remove her plate. Instead he mumbled something.
"I'm
sorry. I didn't hear you," she said, smiling up at him.
He gave
her a stare and said something in the same unintelligible mumble. She could,
however, sense his urgency. He had something she must do?
"I'm
really very sorry, but would you repeat your question?" She gestured at
the chattering diners by way of explanation.
The
little man looked angry. In a clear voice, he asked the waiter at the next
table to join him.
"I
ask her a simple question and she gives me this
so-sorry
routine," he said. But he was incensed about something. And his urgency
intensified.
"Really,
there's so much noise," Amalda said.
The
second waiter, a burly man, gave her a fierce scowl.
"What's
your problem, miss? You got delusions? Ain't you conventioneers satisfied with
nothing? Do like he says and there'll be no trouble."
"I
certainly don't want to cause trouble." And Amalda began to broadcast
soothing thoughts.
Suddenly
a third man was pulling her chair from under her and the first two had her by
the arms.
"You
just come with us, miss. You just come with us."
They
were scared: they were prompted by an urgency which was unnatural and
artificially induced. He had instigated their actions.
She got
Harold to his feet. The poor witless fool was momentarily as confused as she
was. She felt Bruce reacting. But she was being physically manhandled away from
the table by the two waiters. If they did get her out of the hall—it wasn't
that far to the kitchen entrance —Amalda tried to keep from panicking. The next
thing she knew Harold reached out and grabbed the waiters by the shoulders, had
torn their hands from her arms, and banged their heads together.
Then
Bruce and two officials closed in on the knot of people and somehow the
unconscious waiters were being whisked from the banquet hall.
"Calm
'em, Mally," Bruce hissed at her and she began to pour out such sweetness
and light that everyone at her table stopped eating to beam at each other. She
modified the broadcast, got Harold and herself reseated. She even managed to
keep her trembling reaction inward so that none of it boiled over to erase the
idiotic smile from Harold Orley's face.
By the time
the luncheon ended, however, the effort began to tell on her and was reflected
in Harold's nervousness. She felt physically drained. What if he had been able
to get
her away before Harold could react? Before Bruce, on the other side of the
hall, had been able to get to her? Supposing he had ...
Bruce
was at her side, his face set and determined. She knew that look. But now she
was afraid of leaving the semi-protection of so many people. If he had actually
tried to kidnap her in the middle of a convention...
A
plainclothes LEO man was bearing down on them. She rose, smiling brightly.
Harold twitched his hulk to his feet, but bis brow was clouding with childlike
anxiety.
Disgust
at her spinelessness buoyed Amalda's weakening knees. The instant Red put his
arm around her protectingly, she almost crawled into him.
"Let's
get her out of here," Red said and gestured the LEO man to lead Harold.
"Come
this way," the LEO man said, gesturing to the draperies at the side of the
huge banquet hall. A door in the paneling gave onto a small anteroom. "The
Waiters Union is screaming over those busted skulls. We got to get you out of
here quietly. What'n'hell did happen, Amalda?"
"I
don't quite know," she murmured, aware that exhaustion was overcoming
mental resolve.,"Is it all right to leave?" She looked back over her
shoulder at the diners dispersing slowly.
"The
hell with them," Bruce said in a savage voice.
"I'm
so sorry. So sorry." Amalda had a sense of failure. The first tune she
came up against him she had fallen apart. She wanted to cry. She was a failure.
After all Daffyd and the others had done to help her ... to swoon like any
vapid female ...
"I'll
get you. I'll get you the next time." The voice was as loud in her ears as
Bruce's exclamation.
"Bruce..."
Charlie
Moorfield came through Daffyd's door without bothering to knock.
"They
did it," he cried, halting his forward momentum just short of gouging his
thighs on the desk edge.
Daffyd
picked up the images so vivid in Charlie's mind, and despite the fact that he
could also perceive that the emergency was over, he sprang to his feet.
"Who
did what?" demanded Sally, excitedly. She wasn't accurate enough to 'path
the sequence.
"They
tried to snatch Amalda at the Morcam Convention luncheon," Daffyd told
her.
"Only
she got Harold to bash their skulls in."
Sally
gasped.
"Gillings
said the attempt and the arrest were handled so quickly that no one at the
table with Amalda and Harold knew what happened," Charlie went on.
"Waiters Union is screaming over the quote unwarranted unquote arrest of
three members. There's hell to pay."
"Not
necessarily," said Lester but he was glowering as he walked into the room
and carefully closed the door behind him. "This is a clear case of
professional immunity."
"How
do you construe that?" Daffyd asked.
Lester
sighed as he regarded his boss with a tolerant expression.
"Amalda
is a registered Talent, right? She was present at the Luncheon in a
professional capacity. Therefore no one, not anybody, has the right to
interfere. The waiters did, by trying to remove her from the hall. They broke
the law. Amalda hasn't. Neither has Harold. Even if he was a little
overzealous, he is now protected from the consequences of his Talent."
"Wait
a minute, Lester," Charlie said, "that Immunity Law only means that
you can't get sued when..."
"It
also means," and Lester waggled a bony finger at Charlie and Daffyd in
turn, "according to the way Senator Joel Andres and our legal eagles interpreted
it to me, that any citizen attempting to interfere with a registered Talent's
performance of his duty is violating that law."
"This
would be the first time we've had to invoke the law," Daffyd said.
Lester
raised his eyebrows in surprised alarm. "So what's wrong with that? Or did
you break your . . ." he glanced abruptly at Sally who stifled her laugh .
. . "your bones arranging protection not to use it?"
Op Owen
made a cut-off gesture with one hand. Lester Welch muttered in disgust.
"I
thought by this time you'd've learned the cost of idealism, Dave. We sweated
out that Bill: it damned near cost us Joel Andres's life; we have a clear case
of an infraction and by God's little chickens, you're going to invoke it. If
Gillings hasn't already."
The
comset on Daffyd's desk lit up, flashing red. He pushed the toggle down.
"Commissioner
Gillings, sir, urgently."
Daffyd
nodded acceptance.
"Op
Owen, we're getting a lot of static from the Waiters Union, about Amalda, false
arrest and all that crap," Gillings stated with no preamble. "So far
I've played it that their member was pushing a lust act and got told to bug
off: that the lady-in-question is sufficiently upset to invoke female citizen's
rights. Then we got the honest-employees, good union men with clean sex records
and she's a pervert-after-the-damages claim." Gillings sighed with heavy
disgust. "You know, the usual convention static. Now, we can clear all
this up by invoking the Professional Immunity Act but. .." and Gillings
waggled a thick finger at Daffyd. "I'm not all that eager to break the
team's cover. Bruce Vaden told my men that something had scared Amalda and the
only thing I know she's scared about is what happened at the Fact. Was there a
repeat at the Morcam?"
"I
haven't talked to Amalda yet, Frank," Daffyd said. "I assume she's on
her way back here with Vaden?" Gillings nodded. "Give me a little
time."
"Don't
take too much. That Waiters Union packs quite a wallop."
As soon
as the Commissioner's face had faded from the screen, Daffyd asked for Ted
Lewis in the LEO Block.
"Ted,
you heard about the snatch attempt on Amalda?"
"It's
all over the place. Say, why don't you just invoke the Immunity Act . . .
No?" Ted was as perplexed as Lester.
"Is
Roznine involved in any way in the Waiters Union?"
"Hell
yes. There isn't one Union he isn't involved with right now."
"Any
chance of finding out if he was at the Morcam Convention Hotel this
afternoon?"
Ted
Lewis held up a hand, flicked on another switch, his words and the reply
indistinct, being off the receiver limit of the comscreen. He looked more
confused.
"We've
had Croner sort of keeping him under the eye/ear. Croner says he's at a TRI-D
on Market and Hall. Huh, how's that, Croner? Hey, boss, Roznine has been
watching a lot of TRI-D lately."
"Then
he suspects he's been under surveillance and is ducking out the other exit of
the TRI-D. Fine." This was an unsettling development because it could mean
that Roznine was developing as a Talent. If he got pushed too hard. ... op Owen
shuddered. "Let's go see Amalda."
"It
was him," Amalda told Daffyd. She looked white, shaken and small as she
huddled against Red Vaden on the couch in the living room of their suite.
"How
close to you?"
She
shook her head. "He wasn't in the room. I'd've seen him. But he was near
enough to recognize me. My mind, I mean." She gave a delicate shudder. Had
he recognized her because she'd been thinking those thoughts about him? She
wanted to ask Daffyd but she didn't dare. She'd let him down enough already.
"Were
you aware of anything, Red?" Daffyd asked.
"Not
at first Then only Amalda's surprise. I looked up and saw the waiters grabbing
her. But before I could get across the room, Harold had acted." There was
admiration on Vaden's face for the maneuver. "I should apologize to the
guy. I think we got things quieted down before any of the convention crowd got
wise."
"After
the attempt, were you aware of Roznine's mind, Amalda?"
"Not
until we were leaving the hall." She closed her eyes. "He said 'I'll
get you. The next time I'll get you.' "
Daffyd
looked questioningly at Red who shook his head.
Had you
ever received words before, Amalda? Daffyd asked.
Amalda
looked at him startled and then shook her head, smiling shyly. "Only from
you. Before now." She was aware of his concern. "That's bad, ain't
it?" she asked, her soft southern inflection intensifying her regret.
"Not
necessarily. We have a problem," he began, choosing his words carefully.
"We know that Roznine would like to ... get you, Amalda, to accomplish his
own ends which, knowing your capability, must be illegal control of men's
emotions. We have to assume he's been trying to locate you. We must also assume
that he may not realize that Brace is part of your ability. And that's a link
that can and will protect you, Amalda." Daffyd reinforced that notion with
a stern telepathic voice. "Roznine couldn't succeed in kidnapping you
today, could he? Well, he damned well won't be able to anywhere else either."
"You
can't be sure of that, Daffyd," she said in a very small scared voice.
"I
don't intend to put it to the test, Amalda," Daffyd continued smoothly,
smiling at the apprehensive girl, "but kindly remember that you have
successfully eluded him twice now. Once by running away and
hiding—successfully. And today by direct action against his agents."
Amalda
slowly nodded her head in agreement.
"Now,
while Roznine is keen to get his hands on you, we ... and I include the
Commissioner . . . are very anxious to get Roznine."
It was
Brace Vaden who stiffened and looked with an intensity close to hatred at
Daffyd op Owen. The telepath returned that look calmly, knowing in that
exchange that Vaden understood the implication even if Amalda didn't.
"Roznine
is obviously a latent Talent. We know he fits minds with Amalda. We don't know
what else he can do, and he is in a peculiarly sensitive position in the ethnic
situation of this city: in a position to do a lot of damage or a lot of good.
We can't push him too far and we can't let him go. We do want him, preferably
on his own initiative as you did, to come to the Center. You know what it's
like to have an unmanageable Talent. . ."
Daffyd
was speaking more to Bruce Vaden than Amalda but it was the girl who answered.
"It's
awful . . . awful lonely, awful wonderful." She gave Daffyd a smile,
tremulous, and though she held her chin up in an attitude of confidence, he
could see the indecision and fear of her mind.
"Now,"
he went on briskly, "in using the Waiters Union to snag you, Roznine has
put us in a difficult position: we can easily use the Professional Immunity Act
to protect you but that would necessitate your appearance in court. And believe
me, everyone interested in our cover agents would be there to identify you.
Your team usefulness would decrease ..."
"Does
Amalda have to appear in court?" asked Red suddenly.
"Well,
yes. Oh, I see what you mean," and Daffyd started to grin. He managed to
keep his smile normal despite what he had read in Bruce Vaden's mind under the
cover of the constructive suggestion. "Very good point. Two ways. Yes, I
suppose we could make Amalda up to look different . . . or we could have a
stand-in for her. In that case, Amalda would have to be physical-
ly
present because Roznine would be there and he'd know if she weren't present,
which could score against us if an EEG reading is requested by the prosecution.
Hmmm. Good notion."
"What
can Roznine hope to achieve by forcing us into court?" asked Red. He was
trying to cover his earlier thoughts before they became apparent to Daffyd.
Present now was a thread of hopelessness, a presentiment that the intense
happiness and rapport that Brace Vaden had enjoyed with Amalda was to be
sundered: too good to last. Daffyd could only answer the spoken question.
"Now
that has me stumped," he said, and meant it on several levels.
"Stand-in?"
Gillings appeared to reject the stratagem instantly and just as abruptly, he
frowned thoughtfully. "Why? You don't think anyone would be crazy enough
to try and snatch Amalda in court, do you? Although . . ." he glanced over
at the windows, "the atmosphere is damned unstable..."
"I
know," Daffyd agreed. Even during the short copter flight to the LEO
Block, he'd been aware of the pervasive "darkness" of the city's
emotional aura. The weather had been miserable, which didn't help; general
employment was down; there'd been the usual complaints about the
subsistence-level foods; gripes about the TRI-D programming; nothing out of the
ordinary . . . yet. There might indeed be the makings of a major blow-up.
It
would take two weeks for an improvement in the food to have a perceptible
effect: TRI-D programming was undoubtedly being altered but even the most
perceptive Talents could be fooled over what the public really wanted on the
boob tubes. The variety of "circuses" available was almost as
infinite as food-tastes and yet one never knew precisely what would satiate the
public appetite. Op Owen made a mental note to check all precog rumblings.
Strange there hadn't been any definite Incident
by
anyone when such a large population unit was involved.
"Look,
op Owen," Gillings was saying, "I've got to have the team available
for riot spotting. Particularly right now. And I can't have them
identifiable."
"Then
we send Amalda to the hearing made-up."
Gillings
muttered under his breath about fancy dress and sow's ears and then suddenly
swung round to fix op Owen with a startled glare. Daffyd hadn't expected to
keep Gillings in the dark long.
"Okay,
op Owen, what's behind all this pussy-footing? Who was trying to snatch Amalda
at the Morcam Luncheon? Was it the same guy who was at the Fact? Because if it
was, let's get him and cool him. I need that team operating. And there's that
open charge of riot provocation ..."
Op Owen
took a deep breath. "I don't think it would be advisable to cool
Roznine."
"Roznine?"
Gillings exploded from his chair with all the frustrated astonished exasperated
impotence of the strong man suddenly discovering himself in an untenable
position. "Roznine! Christ, op Owen, do you know what would happen to this
city, in the present mood, if I arrested the Pan-Slavic leader?" He fumed
on, in much the same vein, for moments more until either Daffyd's placatory
thoughts or his own lack of breath brought a stop to the flow of
recriminations.
"I
haven't suggested you arrest Roznine. In fact, that would not only be impolitic
but dangerous."
Gillings
glared at him, snapping out one short explosive word. "How?"
"Because
Roznine is a latent Talent. That's what scared Amalda."
Gillings
erupted again, thoroughly enraged. This tune the shield of his public mind
slipped sufficiently for Daffyd to see past the anger to the panic his
confession evoked.
"No!"
Daffyd's negative, forcible mental as well as audible, carried weight on every
level and blocked those
avenues
of action which he could perceive Gillings already plotting. "Roznine is
contained ... at the moment But—this time we don't force a latent into a
position where he can become dangerous to an entire city. I want to avoid
another Maggie O far, far more than you do!"
Gillings
had no escape from Daffyd's mind, so op Owen did not relent in the pressure
until he was certain of Gillings's uneasy and resentful cooperation.
"Roznine
is no threat to us ... yet. But he does threaten Amalda," Daffyd went on.
"That threat is real. It would be stupid," and he paused to let that
word be absorbed, for Gillings was not a stupid man, "to get Roznine so
frustrated that additional facets of his Talent —whatever it is—are
stimulated."
Gillings's
face was a study of frustration. He gave vent to a stream of profanity which so
delighted and enlightened op Owen that he could ignore the fact that he was the
victim of the spiel. But, with the avalanche, Gillings recovered his mental
equilibrium.
"I
told you a couple of months ago that what you guys really need is a law that
makes it illegal to conceal Talent."
Daffyd
laughed wryly. "Roznine may be unaware that what he uses is Talent!"
"Unaware?
My effing foot. With all the publicity you guys have been larding the TRI-Ds
with, he's got to know what he is—especially if he's been playing mental
patty-cakes with that Amalda. Op Owen, I don't need a Roznine in this city! You
Talents put him where he belongs and bridle him or lobotomize him or something.
Or I'll invoke whatever law on the books suits me and cool him permanently. I
can't have this city turned into a battlefield. Or have you forgotten Belfast?"
His
buzzer winked the urgent red. Gillings raised one fist as if to squash the unit
and then, swearing viciously, slapped the toggle open.
"Well?"
There
was a moment's hesitation. Daffyd could almost
see the
caller swallowing hastily, probably wishing he didn't have to continue.
"Commissioner,
the lawyers for the WU are here with bail for their members. Do we release
them?"
"I
want to scan them," Daffyd said in a swift undertone.
"Delay
'em. Someone's on the way down from this office. Then permit bail."
Gillings
tossed an oddly designed coat button to op Owen.
"This'll
get you anywhere in the building. And keep it."
Daffyd
thanked the Commissioner, and left. Prowling the LEO offices would not be a
frequent pastime: the "neural" noise level was more than a telepath
of Daffyd's sensitivity could bear.
The
Waiters Union had sent a battery of lawyers to procure the release of their
incarcerated members. They had been shown into a waiting room, just off the
main admissions hall of the retention section of the LEO Complex.
Daffyd
sauntered by, scanning each man's mind quickly. What he "heard" he
didn't like, but it confirmed the. fact that Roznine was organizing the
proceedings. None of these men knew more than his own assignment. But each was
moved by an intense desire to complete it expeditiously and successfully or ...
The "or else" held dark, dire and fearful consequences.
Daffyd
returned as quickly as possible to the shielded calm of Gillings's private
eyrie. The Commissioner was absent. Daffyd used the few moments' respite for
some solid thinking.
There
were times, he finally concluded, when a man had to operate on the
"feel" of things alone. He was not, God forfend, a precog, but there
were also tunes when a man simply had to dispense with rational thought and its
consequences. Particularly when faced by a free agent
like
Roznine who could not be expected to have predictable responses to stimuli and
pressures.
The
similarities between Roznine and Maggie O were inescapable, but this time
Daffyd had a tool and a resolve.
"We've been fighting fire with old-fashioned water, Frank," he
said to the Commissioner when the man stalked back into his office. "From
now on we use modern methods, foam and tranquillizers."
"What
are you jibbering about?"
"I
can't explain, but will you trust me?"
Gillings
glared back at him, but his tight natural shield leaked conflicting emotions of
desire-to-believe, distrust, and irritable frustration.
"I
goddamn well have to, don't I? But, goddamn it, Dave, if you Talents don't
contain Roznine ..."
"We
can," and Daffyd op Owen began to grin with utter malice for the
underhanded, immoral, unethical use of Talent he was about to invoke. Lester
wouldn't approve either, but then, he didn't plan to tell Lester Welch.
The
stratagem did require the invocation of the Immunity Act. What Daffyd didn't
count on was the hue and cry when the news of the hearing was announced on the
media. Suddenly Aaron Greenfield vociferously supported the Waiters' Union in
their outraged cry against Talent abusing unTalented people and hiding behind
the law. The Morcam Convention Committee tried to evade any responsibility by
claiming that they had not hired a Talent team for their Luncheon . . . their defense
being that their convention members were law-abiding peaceful people with no
record of violence, so a LEO team was unnecessary and an insult to their good
name, etc. Greenfield made political hay of this as well. He'd never been in
support of the Immunity Law because "obviously it was a screen for
illegal, immoral, unethical invasion of privacy: one more instance of
establish-mentarianism and totally unwarranted minority privilege."
"Repeal the Immunity Act; no extraordinary privilege
for
minorities!" "Make them Pay Their Own Way! Taxation for all on an
equal basis."
Precogs
began to have troubled Incidents. To alter circumstances, the team began
wearing disguises, with Amalda and Bruce Vaden both paired to combat-trained
LEO men. They were also on twenty-four-hour call, hopping from one gathering to
another, trying to forestall explosions—usually at rallies designed to bring
their own downfall. Twice Amalda felt Roznine's mind searching for hers. She'd
break off all broadcasting and the team would leave that area instantly.
The
weather remained unseasonably hot and humid. There were unprecedented foul-ups
in the food supply and a heavy drain on the power sources necessitated cuts of
the entertainment circuits. More trouble.
Roznine's
stratagem also suffered from his zealous-ness. On the day of the hearing, there
were so many people wanting to attend this test of the Immunity Act that he
couldn't possibly have attempted a kidnapping. The press of hopeful attendees
provided the LEO officials with an excuse to be selective and, naturally, the
audience was conveniently packed with out-of-town Talents whom Daffyd had
invited. Sensitives at the Court Block entrance tipped the LEO men off whom to
exclude and the Pan-Slavic contingent was decimated. In the wake of the
prosecuting force, Roznine was admitted in his capacity as Pan-Slavic leader
since one of the waiters was his ethnic. It was the first opportunity Daffyd op
Owen had had to get a good look at the man and he was somewhat surprised by
Roznine's physical appearance. Daffyd would have liked to "scan" him
but the emotional aura of the courtroom made that mentally and physically
impossible. The telepath pondered on the subconscious impressions he'd been
receiving from Gillings and Amalda, for Roznine was a perfectly presentable,
personable looking chap, quietly dressed in a moderately expensive tunic, his
heavy head of black hair cut to his shoulders and his
thick
black moustache trimmed to join the sideburns, leaving the rest of the strong
face bare. Roznine took a seat by the wall and turned for a careful survey of
those already seated.
Op Owen
sincerely regretted the impossibility of probing the man's mind. He must have
planned something. He had a "waiting" about him, calmly composed in
the midst of a hectic scene.
But
there had been no precogs on the situation. There'd been incidental auguries
but of too varied a nature to be useful or indicative of the trend of the day's
events. Daffyd could only conclude, as the Correlation Staff had, that it
didn't matter how the hearing went today. That in itself was unsettling.
However, plans had been made for such contingencies as common sense indicated.
Daffyd had warned Vaden, among other things, and then "conditioned"
Amalda with strong confidences. There were Talents unknown to the girl in the
audience and they had their instructions.
Bruce
Vaden entered, slipping into an aisle seat at the rear. He, too, glanced
around, his eyes sliding past Daffyd's. He's looking for Roznine, Daffyd
thought, as Vaden's eyes lingered once on some bull-chested man but not on
Roznine's mustachioed face. Roznine's attention was held by a wiry little man
in sloppy tweeds of ancient manufacture who pranced conspicuously down the
aisle to a seat reserved for him by the prosecution's table.
So,
thought Daffyd, Aaron Greenfield had a small man's push! Greenfield leaned
over, tapping one of the prosecuting attorneys on the shoulder and engaged him
in a guarded conversation, all the time glancing around the audience, pointing
at last to the very empty seats on the defendant's side.
The
hearing lights went on and the "judge" sounded his electronic gavel
for the court to come to order. One of the prosecution team rose to protest the
absence of the
defendant
and counsel but that was Amalda's cue and she, and her escort, made their
entrance.
There
was, of course, the anticipated cry of protest from the prosecuting attorneys.
The defendant arrived garbed in voluminous robes, bewigged and made up a la
japonaise, escorted by two women exactly the same to the last hair and
measurement. Even as the prosecution leapt to its collective feet, the three
figures shifted in a complicated pattern, making it impossible for any
un-Talented person to know which one was which.
However,
as this was a preliminary hearing, necessarily conducted in front of the legal
computer, the "hearing" judge had no directives about the dress or
escort of the defendants and/or attorneys so long as they appeared clad and
reasonably clean. Prosecution replied that the defendant was deliberately
obstructing justice by appearing with look-alike escorts. One of the Amaldas
rose, presented two sets of credentials as legal counselors for the defendant
and asked the "hearing judge" if it was programmed to refuse
defendant's counsel on the basis of similarity in shape and appearance to
defendant. The objection was overruled.
Prosecution
instantly demanded EEG readings to prove that the women so attired were in fact
the aforesaid attorneys and the defendant.
Defense
had no objection and EEG readings were promptly taken, establishing beyond
controversy who were the attorneys and who the defendant. At which point, the
three women repeated their rapid "shell-act." Daffyd op Owen watched
furious anger suffuse the faces at the prosecution table, evidence that the
ruse was successful. The audience murmured, half in amusement, the other half
totally confused by the antics.
The
hearing proceeded with the charge being made of illegal arrest and restraint,
countered by the defense invoking the Professional Immunity Act, requiring that
the complaint against Amalda, Registered Talent, be dropped.
Rather
smug, Daffyd missed the first twinge of Amalda's alarm.
"Daffyd,"
she said, her mind tone anxious, "he's after me."
"Make
everyone laugh," Daffyd said and so quickly did she react, with such
forcefulness, that Daffyd didn't need to call in the reserve empaths to help.
For a
moment Daffyd wondered if fear prompted her outrageous strength, for everyone
in the audience, himself and the planted Talents, were struck by an epidemic of
giggles. It would appear that the audience was attempting to laugh the
complaint out of court.
Daffyd
suppressed Amalda's projection sufficiently so that he wasn't doubled with
uncontrollable mirth. Roznine had a rictus-like grin across his face: he'd
leaned back against the wall in an effort to control his body and he was
forcing his head to move so he could scan the audience. Daffyd bent over
slightly, counterfeiting excessive mirth, and noticed that Red Vaden and the
other Talents were doing the same thing.
Grand!
Let Roznine think only Amalda was responsible! But could Amalda—even with Red
helping—broadcast so strongly? Could she actually use Roznine without his
consent? If so ...
The
hearing judge mechanically sounded the gavel and called for order, its voice
getting louder and louder as the giggles continued. It ordered the courtroom
cleared of "obstructionists." The paroxyms which had afflicted
everyone abruptly ceased and people weakly wiped their eyes and ordered their
clothing. Aaron Greenfield looked anxiously around, his face flushed with
anger. The man was no fool, Daffyd realized. He'd know that Talent had been
responsible and, with his prickly dignity offended, he'd redouble his efforts
to get the Talented taxed. Oh, well, you couldn't make an omelette without
breaking eggs, thought Daffyd philosophically. He nodded approvingly at Amalda
who, with her twins, had sneaked a glance at him.
Prosecution
then announced possession of a sworn statement from the Morcam Convention
Committee that it had requested no LEO surveillance. Defense replied that all
convention situations fell under the Riot-Prevention Act and the LEO Commission
was quite within its jurisdiction to use such riot prevention techniques as
seemed advisable. The uncertain climate of the city was cited to be in the
"unsettled" percentile which permitted the LEO Commission to take
such precautions as it deemed necessary to ensure law enforcement and order.
The defense counsel reminded the "judge" that any gathering of 200 or
more persons (and the Morcam Luncheon had had 525 paid and consumed covers) was
liable to auxiliary surveillance whether requested or not when the climate of
the city registered in the "uneasy" percentiles. Prosecution demanded
to know exactly what riot prevention technique was employed by Amalda. Defense
responded that she was a registered empath of a +15 sensitivity and a
perceptive rating of +12, and offered to produce positive testimonials from
organizations which had employed Amalda in her capacity as a Talent for riot
prevention. Prosecution repeated its demand for an explicit description of her
crowd control technique and defense invoked the provisions of the Law
Enforcement and Order Commission.
Daffyd
wasn't certain whether the prosecution wanted to separate Amalda from her
look-alikes or discover the exact procedure she used.
Defense
again requested that the charge be dropped: she didn't wish to waste the
Court's time and public money when the evidence clearly pointed to a nolle
prosequi situation.
Prosecution
insisted vehemently that this was a clear case of personal infringement and
misuse of privilege just as the time-limit light came on. There was the rumble
as the "hearing judge" searched its programming for precedents. That
didn't take long. Moments later the
date
for a trial appeared on the screen: a date seven weeks hence.
Not
bad, thought Daffyd, although he'd half wished that the computer would throw
the case out. With no precedents, there'd been slim chance of that.
Amalda's
fear was like a knife in his own guts. He tried to get through to Roznine, to
fathom what the man was doing. Bruce Vaden jumped to his feet, started down the
aisle, his progress blocked by others who were beginning to leave the
courtroom.
Daffyd
had the sense that every Talent in the audience stiffened suddenly and then
Roznine, half rising from his seat, stunned amazement on his face, began to
topple slowly over onto the people in the row in front of him.
"Hey,
this guy's passed out," someone cried. "Is there a medic
around?"
Bruce
Vaden kept trying to reach Roznine. Daffyd signalled to two other Talents to
assist. If they could bring Roznine to the Center this way ...
"I'm
a physician," a woman said in a firm loud voice, three rows away, holding
up her emergency pouch. There was a slight scuffle as Bruce tried to intercept
her, but suddenly the Pan-Slavs moved, jumping over seats, knocking people
aside in an effort to protect their fallen leader.
Daffyd
caught Vaden back, called off the others.
The
bailiff scurried from the court, yelling for an ambicopter, as the woman medic
and three Slavs lifted the stricken man and carried him to the prosecution's
table. The "hearing judge" began to call for order, for the next
case, for the obstructionists to be removed from the courtroom. Its voice got
louder and louder until it finally called a recess until the court could be
humanly cleared.
"All
right, all right, we've got him under heavy sedation in the Court Block
infirmary," Frank Gillings told Daffyd, "but that took doing. The
place is crawling with
Pan-Slavs.
We can't arrest a man for collapsing in court ... and how did you do it?"
"One
of the teleports gave him a 'punch,'" Daffyd said with a rueful grimace.
Gillings
stared at him with awe and respect.
"One
has to be very careful," Daffyd explained almost apologetically,
"pressing against the carotid. But he was pressuring Amalda."
"You
expected that! But I expected you guys to grab him there. And that goddamned
hearing is affecting the entire city. Now don't tell me you expected
that!"
Daffyd
looked at Gillings and, for a micro-second, hesitated.
"No,
not exactly, but we're doing our very best."
"What?
What in hell do you mean by that?"
"I
mean, we've set the trap and baited it and we simply have to have
patience."
"Patience?
With this city about to erupt?"
"Curiously
enough, Gillings, I don't think the city is going to erupt. Oh, we've recorded
some Incidents, minor ones, involving Talents . . ." and Daffyd frowned
because the Incidents were distressing and so vague that only a general
all-Talent warning could be issued.
Gillings
gave one of his disgusted growls. "You guys make me sick. You can't even
protect yourselves."
"We'll
do what we can," and Daffyd's voice turned steely enough to reprimand
Gillings. "What concerns you, Commissioner, is the fact that our precogs
have predicted no major Incidents. Your city is going to be safe!"
"Prove
it!" demanded Gillings but Daffyd op Owen made no reply as he left the
Commissioner's office.
It took
the telepath the entire trip back to the Center to get control of his inner
perturbation. Of course, Gillings had to be ruthless and consider only the
larger aspect, the safety of the City, but it galled Daffyd to think that
Gillings could so offhandedly dismiss the personal trials of the Talented. It
grieved Daffyd that there would be more precedents on the newly-programmed
Immunity Law
after
the next few days. The fact that Talents would now have redress for the
precogged personal assaults on them was no satisfaction. He'd really have
preferred never to have had to invoke that Law.
It
would serve Gillings proper notice if Roznine did burst out of bounds . . . And
how in hell were they to promulgate a law that made it illegal to conceal
Talent? Latent Talents were always cropping up when the right connections were
made...
And not
a single Incident connected with Amalda or Red or Vsevolod Roznine. And he'd
had every precog in the Center sensitized to that unholy trio. How could that
possibly be?
Daffyd's
state of mind was grim as he landed the copter on the roof of the mam
administration building of the Center. He tried to drain the poisons of
bitterness and anger from his mind as he descended the stairs. He paused at his
office door but swung away. He had to calm himself. This excessive reaction was
self-defeating. Gillings might be a latent Talent himself but he remained
obdurately impervious to the problems of the Talented, especially when they
interfered with the law enforcement and order of his precious city.
While
Roznine was unconscious in the Court Block infirmary, Daffyd had managed to
implant a suggestion that Roznine seek Amalda out at the Center. It was the
only feasible practicable method . . . make the mountain come to Mahomet. And
the mountain must apparently come of its own volition. Now, if he could just
get Mahomet to do a Lorelei ... it would speed matters up, and maybe so many
Talents wouldn't get hurt.
That
brought Daffyd back to the point of anger he'd reached in Gillings's office and
the whole thought sequence started again.
His
path led him past the play-yard where he could hear the children yelling and
screaming, arguing over some violently important triviality. Triviality? To
him,
perhaps,
yet they were as devoted to their separate sides of the argument as he was to
...
"Well?"
Sally Iselin stood in his way, her fists planted on her hips, a mock-ferocious
expression on her pert pretty face. "Aren't you pleased with the outcome
of the hearing?" She frowned, sensing his uncertainty. "But you were
able to plant a suggestion in Roznine's mind? Oh, that Gillings. What is it
about a cop that sours the man?" It was Daffyd's turn to be surprised.
"That's pretty good reading, Sally."
As
suddenly he felt her mind tighten and the contact that had begun to lift his
depression was taken away. "What does Gillings expect of us anyway?"
she asked. "A happy ending!"
Sally
eyed him speculatively and then fell in step with him, grinning.
"There
has to be a happy ending to every fairy tale, after all. Though I shouldn't
have expected it of Gillings, fer gawd's sake."
Her
switch of mood, while it obscured her thoughts from him, lifted his spirits.
Nonetheless, he said rather gloomily that there hadn't been a precog of any
happy ending for Cinderella.
"Oh,
you . . . honestly!" Sally sounded peeved and her eyes flashed at him
irritably. "Your trouble, Daffyd op Owen, is that you don't really believe
in Talent."
"I
beg your pardon?" Daffyd stopped and stared down at her.
"Just
because no one has precogged a disaster of some monumental proportion resulting
from this fairy tale affair, you're down in the doldrums. Does everything
Talented have to end in disaster? Are you going to be committed to grief for
the rest of your born days? Or are you willing to admit that there hasn't been
a disaster precog because there isn't going to be a disaster? That things will
work out right? All the sensitives are edgy, but not miserably so. Good God, do
we have to wallow
in
sorrow all the time? Do we have to run around wondering if we have a right to
be happy?"
Daffyd
thought he knew Sally Iselin fairly well but this—from a girl
characteristically full of puppyish goodnature and exuberance?
She
turned on him, her brown eyes flashing with anger as she stamped her foot.
"And I am not a good-natured puppy! I can be just as much of a bitch as
any other woman!"
In that
outraged mood, she forgot to shield her inner thoughts. It was all there, what
propriety had kept Daffyd from "perceiving" and her sense of honor
had prevented her from showing him more openly.
Abruptly
Daffyd reached out and drew her into his arms, savoring the miraculous
disclosure. Unaccountably Sally struggled, and courtesy disregarded, Daffyd
probed deeply into her mind, past the barriers she had carefully erected, past
the pert verbosity with which she masked those inner feelings. With a strangled
sob, she relaxed against him and let him perceive the whole of her conflict.
The older man/much younger woman, her yearning to be tall/elegant, an
appropriate spouse for a man of his status/abilities, the puppy image of
herself from his mind, her feeling of inadequacy because she couldn't locate
more and more Talents to relieve the burdens on him ... all the small sins and
great vanities that inhabit the soul of any human being. And what he saw in
that instant of perception only endeared her to him more.
With
one hand he tilted her head back, forcing her to meet his eyes, amused that a
telepath required a look. Her mouth lifted slightly in a smile as she shared
his thought. He felt a pressing need to articulate the thoughts he was
transferring to her mind but all he could say was her name before he kissed
her. No more was needed.
The
next morning the nebulous anxieties of the sensitives were translated into
attacks on the Talented. One
of the
finders attached to the LEO Block was beaten up on his way to the Center. A
Talent mechanic at the big Mid-Town Parking Complex was seriously mauled and
shoved into the boot of the car he'd been servicing. Two healers in the General
Hospital were raped and shorn of their hair but their assailants were caught because
the girls had the ability to "call" for help.
In the
clear light of that morning, Daffyd bitterly wondered if indeed he had a right
to any personal happiness.
"And
if that isn't a piece of outright antediluvian puritanical nonsense, I don't know
what is," Sally said,, popping out of the bathroom with all the savagery
of a miniature ..."... I am not a miniature anything, Dai op Owen."
But she
was comical enough in her undressed state, mentally bristling at his thoughts
and aggravated by his pessimistic rumination to put the morning's disasters in
their proper perspective.
"I'm
not sure what good it'll do to have Roznine marching in here now," she
went on, pouring out coffee.
"I'd
hoped he'd come as soon as he regained consciousness."
Sally's
eyebrows flicked up. "You've never failed of your mark before. Unless . .
." She pursed her lips, frowning.
"Amalda's
inhibiting him?" Daffyd caught the half-suppressed notion.
"You
know she's scared of him. I mean, scared as a woman is of a very domineering
man . . . sexually, I mean. Oh, you know what I mean and then there's Brace
Vaden and all that."
"Amalda
had proof positive yesterday that Roznine couldn't dominate her."
"Perhaps
... I mean, intellectually, Talent-wise, yes. But it's Brace that's holding her
back. He's already at the top of the Glass mountain and Amalda doesn't dare
roll the other apple."
Daffyd
caught the unarticulated ramifications of Sally's thinking. Part of Amalda's
reluctance to admit Roznine's attractiveness to her stemmed from a fear of
losing Bruce Vaden, to whom she was equally attracted but for different
reasons.
"She's
not one to drop the bone she's got in her mouth for the one she sees in the
water," Sally said.
"Now
it's fables?"
"Why
not? You added myths to my fairy tales so it's my shot."
"That
only leaves me proverbs."
"So?"
"So!
That leaves us with Amalda inhibiting Roznine?"
"He
should've been here otherwise."
Daffyd
was turning over this interesting possibility in his mind when the comset
beeped.
"Boss,
we got pickets out in front," said Lester in a thoroughly disgusted tone
of voice. "Pay your fair share. Everyone else is taxed. Why not you? No
Minority privileges."
Daffyd
sighed long and deeply.
"Pete's
on reception and he says they've got legal political platforms, their IDs are
upstate and they're registered party members. Legally, under the Political
Platform Act, they can picket the grounds because there is legislation
concerning our tax status before the State Senate right now."
"Did
you inform Gillings?"
"Hah!
They informed us about the time the first picketers foregathered on our
gatestep. What'n'hell happened to your Machiavellian nonsense of
yesterday?"
"
There's many a slip twixt cup and lip!'" Daffyd replied. Sally gasped and
signaled surrender.
"Huh?"
Lester wanted an explanation.
"I
must ask Gillings if Roznine's had a visit from Aaron Greenfield since the
hearing yesterday," was Daffyd's reply.
"Did
you goof, boss? Now what do we do?"
"Keep
tabs that the on-lookers remain quiescent, and alert riot control."
"Amalda
and Red?"
"No,
plunk Harold in the gatelodge with Pete. Ask Gillings
"Ask
him yourself: Charlie says he's just called through."
Before
Daffyd could request a deferment of that call, Charlie had patched it through
and Daffyd hoped his flinching wasn't apparent to the LEO Commissioner.
"You
got troubles?" Gillings's face was impassive.
"Nothing
we can't handle ..."
"Oh,
the trap's sprung?" Gillings looked almost pleased.
"Hmmmm
. . . but I'd like a few of your riotmobiles around."
Gillings's
expression changed rapidly to sour discontent.
"Like
that, huh? I thought Roznine was supposed to come like a lamb?"
Daffyd
shot a glance at Sally who was muttering something about metaphors being
illegal. Her levity was not appropriate to the gravity of the present situation
and yet... it helped.
"Roznine's
a strong personality ..."
"I'm
going after him . . ." Gillings now looked like a trap sprung.
"Gillings,"
and Daffyd's tone of voice was far sterner than people were apt to use in
addressing the LEO Commissioner, "don't go after Roznine. We've exerted
all the pressure possible under the circumstances. He'll come..."
The
Commissioner regarded the Director for a long moment.
"You
better know what the hell you're doing, op Owen."
"I
do."
"Well,
you sound as if you do," Sally said when the call was disconnected.
"I
really think I do, Sally." Daffyd looked out of his
window
toward the building which housed Amalda and Red. "Two birds in one bush,
two baskets with the same eggs, two minds with the same great thought . .
."
"Spare
me! Uncle! I yield!"
"Good,
then let's figure out how to unwind Amalda. I did not suggest to Roznine that
he bring Great Birnam Wood to Dunsinane."
"I
should have guessed that Shakespeare would be next."
"Considering
my propensity for quoting Alexander Pope, I wonder you dared."
"He's
coming for me," said Amalda when she and Red noticed the circling
picketers and the gathering of curious by-standers.
Bruce
Vaden threw back his head and roared. He wasn't counterfeiting the amusement
though it had a bitter note. But her woebegone expression was ludicrous and his
laughter was not the sympathy she'd expected.
"My
dear child, if Roznine has to salve his Slavic ego by resorting to that kind of
subterfuge ..."
"What
on earth do you mean?"
"I
mean that Roznine simply can't walk in here, no matter what suggestion op Owen
planted in his mind when he was unconscious."
Her
irritation was replaced by a shudder. Vaden could feel the repugnance she
experienced when touching Roznine's mind. But her impression no longer
dominated his reaction to Roznine. Not after seeing the man in Court yesterday.
"Did
you really look at Vsevolod Roznine yesterday?"
Amalda
gave him that wide-eyed innocent stare and he felt her going "dead"
on him. At first Bruce thought it was because she was afraid of Roznine and
censored any references to him. Now he knew differently.
"Mally
hon," and he took her by the shoulders, forcing
her to
look him in the eye. "I looked at Roznine. I looked him over good and
strangely enough, I liked what I saw." That got her where she lived, and
Red took a deep breath, opening his own inner mind so she couldn't fail to see
the sincerity of his words. "He's the kind of guy I'd trust and respect
even if I could probably take him apart in a fair fight. Oh, I know. I've heard
all this static about his sewer-sink mind and his power in the city and I don't
know as my public mind would be all that clean and pure. I've learned to do my
improper thinking carefully but no one's warned Roznine that there're guys
around reading him now and again."
Amalda
was staring up at him. Her eyes had gone all big and her lips were parted. He
wanted to kiss her, to love and reassure her, but not just then.
"Mind
you, I don't think Roznine's a crusading saint but feckitall, Mally, he's up
against City Hall and when you're fighting City Hall you use every advantage
you can beg, borrow or," he clipped her lightly on the jaw, "kidnap.
Not that I blame him for flipping his nut over you." He couldn't keep his
voice steady and he knew he was playing-back their initial meeting. "If
you affect Roznine the way you do me, I'm damned sorry for the poor guy. It
must be hell for him to want you and not get you."
Amalda
discarded all restraint and now remorse/love/ appreciation / agreement /
understanding / pride / loyalty/washed over him.
"Don't
do that, Mally. I've got to think."
She bit
her lip apologetically and "buttoned" her emotions up.
"Thanks.
Now, where was I? Yeah. As of yesterday, I don't think Roznine could use you.
Not now. Or only if you let him. And you won't. If that's what's bugging you,
forget it. Or don't you remember how easily you knocked him out? You gotta take
it easy on the guy, hon. He loves you even if he doesn't know it."
"It's
you I'm worried about, Brace," she said in a very low voice, her eyes wide
and full of tears.
So he embraced
her, pressing her slender body against him, so she'd "feel" all he
couldn't express. His knowledge that you aren't selfish with Talent, whatever
kind you possessed: that they had a relationship too strong to be broken or
diminished by the acceptance of a third party: that Talent had obligations
beyond the personal and this was one of them, for both Amalda and Bruce.
She
reached up tenderly to stroke his face, her fingers enjoying the tactile
contact with the silky hair of his beard, letting her fingers express what she
didn't articulate. As she had learned to accept Brace's right to decide for
them both, she accepted his decision now.
"The
stage is set, honey," he said finally. "Extras all milling about,
waiting for the director. Are you going to let him come?"
She
gave an impatient little shrug, then squared her shoulders and smiled at him,
ready to move mountains, from the look of her. He liked that about Amalda,
among a thousand other things. He conveyed that approval with a gentle, mind-blown
hug. Talent has advantages, too.
Roznine.
rubbed at his temples, wondering what kind of fake powder the medic had sold
him as a headache remedy.
They
had done something to him when he was unconscious. Just as he, Vsevolod
Roznine, knew that they had caused him to black out at the hearing. No, not
"they"! Her!
The
conviction that he had to get to her, be with her, returned with renewed and
irresistible force. And Roznine fought it again, fought it as his head
throbbed, and his hands clenched into fists of effort to withstand the
compulsion.
He
flung himself from the table, catching the leg with
his
foot and upsetting the untouched meal, half-stumbling against the door and
striking his temple on the frame. He hit his head a second, a third time. And
clutching the molding, threw back his head in bitter laughter.
"Roznine
has to beat his own head, because it feels so good when he stops!"
His
fingers dug into the frame until his nails bent against the durable plastic.
His head turned slowly, as if he could see straight through concrete and
plastic, across the miles to the Center in which direction he unerringly
turned.
"NO!'
This time his fists thudded into plastic. "Roznine does not come at a
woman's call. She comes to him!"
How had
they done this to him? How could she call him? Once he'd known her name and
that she was at the Center, he'd had his people find out all they could. She
was registered as a telempath. Roznine had looked that up and the answer had
only confirmed what he'd guessed himself: she could transmit emotions and
probably receive them.
Roznine
pounded the wall viciously, transmitting such hatred and discontent as boiled
up in him from the frustration of not having her and the humiliation of being
knocked unconscious . . . in full view of his constituents ... by a slip of a
girl he could break in two pieces with one hand.
And who
was the redbearded man who worked with her? How close did he work with her?
Jealousy
was added to the seething emotions of Vsevolod Roznine. And the skin of his
skull pulsed with a surfeit of his angry blood.
The
intensity of his desire to see Amalda reached another peak. He fought it. He
would not go to her. She must come to him! He could not go to her. She had to
come to him. She, who could read his thoughts, let her read that one. Let her
read his feelings ...
"No!"
Roznine
stopped. Everything about him stopped, his heart, his lungs, the oxygen
molecules in his blood. Then he took a deep breath and exhaled, his wide mouth
forming an odd smile in a suddenly calm face.
No
wonder she had not come to him, the little one. She could read his thoughts.
She would be terrified of him, Roznine: terrified of the anger he had felt
toward his little bird. He had felt her fear before, felt her spirit fluttering
away from him. That was why she had run from the Fact. But she shouldn't fear
him, Vsevolod Roznine. Every man, boy and adult she should fear but not
Vsevolod Roznine. He would go to her. He would explain.
Chort
vozmi! Would his head never stop aching?
His
comset buzzed. The noise stabbed piercingly through his skull. He grabbed
frantically for the set to stop the noise, answering in a savage tone.
"Everyone's
in position, Gospodeen."
"Position?"
Roznine shook his battered head, unable to recollect which position and where.
"The
picketers have been checked by the Center's guards, who are two old men:
nothing to worry about."
Picketers?
Pickets? At the Center? Oh, yes. He'd discussed that with the little man from upstate.
How could he have forgotten?
"And
the riot squad?"
"Parked
at or working conveniently nearby. The disposal men..."
"Good
enough!" His head pounded like a drill press but he remembered. How could
he have forgotten? So she was a riot control team, was she? Well, let her
control this riot! Men would pour in to the Center's so private, so secluded,
so sacrosanct grounds from all over the city: men from many ethnic groups so it
couldn't be blamed on his section. It had meant cancelling half the favors he
was owed but, just let him get his hands on that little riot controller and . .
.
He
threw open the illegally unsealed window and slid
down
the airshaft on the escape line. He opened the window in the rear flat, which
conveniently belonged to a relative who was blind anyhow, and exited through
the back door. Found the iron pry-bar and flipped up the sewer lid, snagging it
deftly back over the manhole when he was within. He walked briskly over the
thin stream which trickled down the pipes at this time of day. Two rights and a
left brought him to a wider section conduit with a catwalk on one side. Two
more rights and two lefts and he climbed a ladder. The manhole had been
shielded and a Disposal truck was just drawing up. Swiftly he was within the
truck and issuing orders to the driver.
The
sensitive signalled LEO headquarters that Roznine had left his quarters.
Immediately Gillings warned the Center and circulated the alert to all
stations.
Charlie
Moorfield rang through to Daffyd's quarters.
"Ring
Amalda and tell her I'm on my way over."
Sally
was struggling into her coverall, excitement making her fingers fumble so that
Daffyd held the collar until she could find the armholes.
"He
is coming. You were too much for him."
"Possibly."
Daffyd
could also see another interpretation of Roznine's secret exit, particularly
with the picketers outside and the observers forming a larger and larger ragged
semi-circle beyond the gates to the Center.
"Yes,
I see what you mean, Dai."
"Let's
reinforce Amalda."
The
buzzer sounded again. "Boss, I get no answer from Amalda."
"Tell
Gillings to get all riot units here on the double. Alert ours."
Daffyd
op Owen swore as he grabbed Sally's hand and pulled her out the door. Short of
teleporting, he'd never been down the stairs so fast. Afterwards Sally told him
her feet had touched the steps only three times.
Amalda
and Brace Vaden had exited through one of the side-gates in the grounds. They'd
come up on the picketline from one side, mingling with the onlookers until they
were directly opposite the main gates. The picketers were dutifully chanting
the slogans they carried, the four LEO men routinely assigned a picket, were
almost as bored with the proceedings. A passenger conveyance settled to the
public landing some hundred yards from the gates and the occupants, carrying
collapsed signs, descended in an orderly fashion.
"Those
are bully boys, not bona fide picketers," Bruce told Amalda in a quiet
voice.
She
nodded for she'd unerringly sighted the one man who was important. "He's
with them."
"Well,
this is the last place he'd be looking for us. Are you shielding tightly?"
Amalda
nodded again but she didn't take her eyes from Roznine.
He
really was attractive, she thought. There was something proud and fierce in his
manner. Bruce was right: she hadn't really seen him before. She'd been just so
scared of his mind...
She
stopped thinking because Roznine was suddenly glancing over his shoulder, at
the crowd, frowning slightly. He stood near the copter, to one side of the new
shift of pickets. They were milling about...
"Warn
Dave Amalda, and get set. See how they're maneuvering?" Even as he spoke,
Bruce glided to a more advantageous position for teamwork.
The new
arrivals, for all their aimless movement, could now be seen aiming for the LEO
men and the Center's two guards, mild-appearing gentlemen who were in fact top
kineticists and could hold a grown man immobile on the ground without lifting a
physical finger.
The old
shift broke from their circuit, grounding and collapsing their signs,
preparatory to leaving. Some elements of the crowd which had watched
pacifically from the footpath began to move toward the grounds.
Amalda
began to broadcast, gently at first, the feeling of immense fatigue, utter
boredom and a dislike of this activity.
Brace
moved further across the street, picking up and increasing the intensity of her
broadcast. But he watched Roznine, saw the man stiffen, his head turn slowly,
unerringly towards Amalda. The group in which she had been standing shifted and
she was by herself.
The
setting of the confrontation was superb, Brace Vaden told himself with a
curious objectivity. As if by magic or common consent, everyone melted from the
two principals, leaving a clear path between them.
"Don't
get scared, honey baby," Brace told her tinder his breath, fighting in his
mind to hold the broadcast and disguise the inner reluctance of sharing Amalda
with anyone at all.
Suddenly
he felt buoyed up, felt the indescribable mental support and touch of Daffyd op
Owen, speaking through him to Amalda. And it wasn't just Dave, but something...
no, someone else.
The
area was blanketed with silence by Amalda's projection which began to waver
slightly. Brace intensified it, imagining as he'd been taught, that the emotion
was something visible which he was manipulating tangibly, as visible and
tangible as water falling over a specific area, drenching everything with its
cascade.
Everything
went at half speed. Roznine pulled first one heavy leg forward, then the other,
like a man treading through molasses, sticky, cloying. The man's face was
contorted with effort and concentration.
Amalda
just stood, her chin slightly raised, looking as regal and poised as she had on
the Fact stage, so sure of herself that she almost fooled Vaden.
The
action was all slow motion: the picketers, real and bogus, discarding their all
too heavy signs, inexorably sinking to the ground, sprawling in poses of utter
exhaustion. It affected the LEO men though they tried hard
to
resist the pressure, falling to their knees and hands, faces down on the
ground.
Then
only she, Bruce and Roznine were standing. She took a deep breath and looked
straight at Roznine's eyes: the first time she had done so.
And
Bruce was right that Vascha (she found his nickname easily: though he thought
of himself, self-impor-tantly, only as Vsevolod Roznine, the Vascha personality
was there, too) was nice looking, with a strong body and sensitive hands. She
liked long, well-shaped fingers on a man—she liked to have such hands on her
body.
"All
right, here I am," she said out loud and dared him in her mind to
overpower her.
His
eyes seemed to eat her flesh hungrily, as if starved for the essence beneath
the covering tissue.
"You're
mine. I, Vsevolod Roznine, say you are mine." That was his thought,
beating away at her. She wanted to laugh, to sing out because his thought
couldn't go any further than her mind. It couldn't reach Bruce, standing not
more than five feet away. Not unless she wanted it to go further!
"Well,
what are you waiting for?" she asked gently because the knowledge of such
total power over another human being humbled her.
Some of
his bully boys were getting to their feet for she'd turned off some of her
blanketing projection to deal with Vascha. Through Vsevolod Roznine she sent a
fleet-nig thought of nausea that instantly reduced them to retching bodies on
the grass. And as abruptly, she deflected the actual illness. Then she turned
off the empathetical broadcast completely, knowing its cessation would leave
the victims disoriented enough to cause no further trouble.
"I
think you'd better come with us, Vsevolod," she said to Roznine and took
his hand, turning and leading him toward the Center as if he had no other
choice. He didn't because Bruce fell in on the other side, their strides
matching.
Roznine
was dazed, his lips compressed into a thin line. He glared down at Amalda as
she led him, at arm's length, like a mother dragging an errant child home.
The
gateman nodded to the trio as they passed into the Center's Grounds.
"What'n'hell
has happened to your common sense, op Owen?" Frank Gillings demanded.
"Letting not only Amalda and Vaden but Roznine into the City Council? For
Chrissake that's what he wanted Amalda for..."
"Easy,
Frank. The team's on assignment, completely legitimate."
"Council
isn't a riot situation ..."
Daffyd
raised his eyebrows in polite surprise. "No? According to Roznine, the
tempers get so hot no constructive work is ever done. Each ethnic group insists
that its members are being discriminated against with accusations and
counter-accusations until the mediator adjourns the hearing with nothing
accomplished except exhibitions of parliamentary bad manners. Sorry. The team
is going to cool things long enough for common sense to prevail. Roznine's
reason for wanting Amalda's Talent in City Hall was valid." Daffyd also
neglected to add that that was the bargain he'd struck with Roznine to join the
Center. All the man wanted was to be certain the employment allotments were
impartially assigned. Well, not all, Daffyd amended to himself, but Roznine had
gone about it the wrong way.
Daffyd
grinned reassuringly at Gillings's image in the comset. "He's part of the
team now and she follows orders."
"But
does Roznine?" asked Gillings sarcastically.
"As
I've explained to you, Frank, Roznine is parapsychically dead to anyone else.
Oh, Brace Vaden empathizes with him to some extent now they've both had
training, but Roznine's is a one-way Talent, right to
Amalda.
She's the focus of the gestalt. You might say, he's been check-reined."
Frank
Gillings grunted, somewhat mollified. Then, jutting out his chin, he glared at
the Director. "You going to start lobbying for a rider on that Talent
Immunity Law?"
"Immediately.
In fact," and Daffyd's smile broadened with sheer malice, "Senator
Greenfield is helping us get an interim rider through the State Senate on a
Bill he has coming up on the Agenda next session."
"Greenfield?"
"Yes.
Roznine invited him here at the Center for a chat. The Senator was most
amenable to the suggestion."
The LEO
Commissioner's frown was partically perplexity. "What'd you guys do to
Greenfield? Blanket him with loving kindness?"
"Good
heavens, no. It was merely pointed out to him that the Center is not a
minority, but a collection of minorities since all ethnic groups are
represented. He took a tour of the grounds and instantly perceived that the
housing was by no means as luxurious as he'd been previously led to believe,
with swimming pools or wasted space that might house additional families. In
fact, he complimented us on our planning and thrifty use of facilities."
Frank
Gillings was by no means taken in by Daffyd op Owen's bland manner. He growled
something under his breath.
"What
did Roznine have on him, Dave?"
"I
don't know what you mean, Frank."
The LEO
man made a gesture of disgust.
"Dave,
don't give me any more problems for a while, will you?"
"Nothing's
coming up in the foreseeable future."
The
screen went blank on Gillings's incredulous expression.
"Daffyd,
that was highly unmoral, unethical and downright dirty," said Sally, half
scolding as she rose from the
couch where
she'd been sitting out of line-of-vision of the comset. She walked in under his
arm, linking him around the waist. He nuzzled her curls and kissed her
forehead.
"Probably.
Les is always reminding me that it's bad policy to tell all."
"It's
a shame about Vascha though." Sally sighed.
"Why?"
"Oh,
it's rather sad, his being a psychic mule, her Pegasus."
"Thank
God he is," Daffyd said so fervently she looked up, startled. "With
the ambition and drive that young man has, he'd rule the world in half a year
if Amalda and Bruce weren't there to stop him."